<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8" ?>
<!DOCTYPE gutbook SYSTEM "classicbook2.dtd">
<?xml-stylesheet type="text/css" href="defoe15.css"?>

<gutbook>
<gutblurb>
<para>
Witch Wood
By John Buchan

"And Asa did that which was right in the eyes of the lord . . .  
and removed all the idols that his fathers had made. . . But 
the high places were not removed." -- I Kings XV. 11-14

Hodder &amp; Stoughton, Ltd., Publishers, London, E. C.4

Hodder And Stoughton
Publishers    London

First published July, 1927
Reprinted July, 1927
Reprinted July, 1927

Made and Printed in Great Britain for
Hodder and Stoughton Limited 

Novels By John Buchan

The Thirty-nine Steps
Greenmantle
Mr. Standfast
The Path Of The King
Huntingtower
Midwinter
The Three Hostages
John Macnab
The Dancing Floor
Witch Wood
Also
The Half-Hearted 
The Moon Endureth
Tales and Fancies.

Hodder And Stoughton Ltd.
Publishers	London, E.C.4

Texted scanned and proofed by Arthur Wendover  
email: wendover@soon.com
April 11, 2002

If there are mistakes, they are mine. 
I have not changed any of the old spellings.
Developed for Arthur's Classic Novels
This text is free for anyone to use, in the public domain.

********************************
</para>
</gutblurb>

<markupblurb>
<para>A project for Arthur's Classic Novels. 
Markup by Arthur Wendover. arthur@ArthursClassicNovels.com, May 20, 2002</para>
</markupblurb>

<book>
<acknowledge>
A project for Arthur's Classic Novels. 
Markup by Arthur Wendover. arthur@ArthursClassicNovels.com, May 20, 2002
</acknowledge>

<meta id="Description" content="This is the e-text version of the book Witch Wood by John Buchan, taken from the original e-text witchw10.txt." />

<meta id="XMLFormatting" content="Arthur Wendover, mailto:arthur@ArthursClassicNovels.com, " />

<frontmatter>
<titlepage>
<title>Witch Wood</title>
<author>By John Buchan</author>
<para>
"And Asa did that which was right in the eyes of the lord. . .  </para><para>
and removed all the idols that his fathers had made. . . But </para><para>
the high places were not removed." -- I Kings XV. 11-14
</para><para>. . .</para><para>
To Walter Buchan</para>
</titlepage>
<toc>
<title>Contents</title>
<list><item>
	Prologue</item><item>

	 I. 	The Coming Of The Minister</item><item>
	 Ii.	The Road To Calidon</item><item>
	Iii.	Guests In Calidon Tower</item><item>
	 Iv.	The Faithful Servant</item><item>
	 V.	The Black Wood By Day</item><item>
	 Vi.	The Black Wood By Night</item><item>
	Vii.	The First Blast</item><item>
	Viii.	The Second Blast</item><item>
	 Ix.	Before Lammas </item><item>
	 X.	What The Moon Saw</item><item>
	 Xi.	The Minister Girds Up His Loins</item><item>
	Xii.	The Man With The Squint</item><item>
	Xiii.	White Magic</item><item>
	Xiv.	The Counterblast</item><item>
	Xv.	Hallowmass </item><item>
	Xvi.	The Witch Hunt</item><item>
	Xvii.	Woodilee And Calidon</item><item>
	Xviii.   	The Plague</item><item>
	Xix.	The Sacrifice</item><item>
	Xx.	The Judgment</item><item>
	Xxi.	The Going Of The Minister</item><item>
		Epilogue</item></list>
</toc>

<preface>
<chapheader>
<title>Prologue</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>TIME</emph>, my grandfather used to say, stood still in that glen of his. But 
the truth of the saying did not survive his death, and the first daisies 
had scarcely withered on his grave before a new world was knocking at 
the gate. That was thirty years ago, and to-day the revolution is 
complete. The parish name has been changed; the white box of a kirk 
which served the glen for more than two centuries has been rebuilt in 
red suburban gothic; a main railway line now runs down the Aller and 
the excellent summer service brings holiday-makers from a hundred 
miles distant: houses and shops have clustered under the Hill of Deer; 
there may be found a well-reputed boarding school for youth, two inns -- 
both of them reformed -- a garage, and a bank agent. The centre of 
importance has moved from the old village to the new town by the 
station, and even the old village is no more a clachan of thatched 
roofs straggling by a burnside.  Some enemy of the human race has 
taught the burn to run straight like, a sewer and has spanned it with 
a concrete bridge, while the thatch of the houses has been replaced 
by slates of a metallic green. Only the ruins of the old kirkton have 
not been meddled with; these stand as I remember them, knee-deep in 
docks and nettles, defended by a crumbling dry-stone dyke against 
inquisitive cattle from Crossbasket.
</para>
<para>
The old folk are gone, too, and their very names are passing from 
the countryside. Long before my day the Hawkshaws had disappeared 
from Calidon, but there was a respectable Edinburgh burgess family 
who had come there in the seventeenth century; now these have given 
place to a rawer burgess graft from the West. The farmers are mostly 
new men, and even the peasant, who should be the enduring stock, has 
shifted his slow bones. I learned from the postman that in Woodilee 
to-day there was no Monfries, no Sprot, but one Pennecuik, and only 
two bearers of the names of Ritchie and Shillinglaw, which had once 
been plentiful as ragwort. In such a renovated world it was idle to 
hope to find surviving the tales which had perplexed my childhood. 
No one could tell me when or why the kirk by the Crossbasket march 
became a ruin, and its gravestones lay buried in weeds. Most did not 
even know that it had been a kirk.
</para>
<para>
I was not greatly surprised at this, for the kirk of Woodilee had not 
been used for the better part of three centuries ; and even as a child 
I could not find many to tell me of its last minister. The thing had 
sunk from a tale to an &quot;overcome,&quot; a form of words which everyone 
knew but which few could interpret.  It was Jess Blane, the grieve's 
daughter, who first stirred my curiosity. In a whirl of wrath at some 
of my doings she prayed that the fate of the minister of Woodilee might 
be mine -- a fate which she expounded as to be &quot;claught by the Deil and 
awa' wi'.&quot; A little scared, I carried the affair to my nurse, who was 
gravely scandalised, and denounced Jess as a &quot;shamefu' tawpie, fyling 
the wean's mind wi' her black lees.&quot; &quot;Dinna you be feared, deane,&quot; she 
reassured me. &quot;It wasna the Deil that cam for the Minister o' Woodilee. 
I've aye heard tell that he was a guid man and a kind man.  It was 
the Fairies, hinny.  And he leev'd happy wi' them and dee'd happy 
and never drank out o' an empty cup.&quot; I took my information, I remember, 
to the clan of children who were my playmates, and they spread it 
among their households and came back with confirmation or contradiction.  
Some held for the Devil, some for the Fairies -- a proof that tradition 
spoke with two voices. The Fairy school slightly outnumbered the others, 
and in a battle one April evening close to the ruined kirk we routed 
the diabolists and established our version as the canon. But save for 
that solitary fact -- that the Minister of Woodilee had gone off 
with the Fairies -- the canon remained bare.
</para>
<para>
Years later I got the tale out of many books and places; a folio in 
the library of a Dutch college, the muniment-room of a Catholic family 
in Lancashire, notes in a copy of the second Latin edition of Wishart's 
 <ital>Montrose</ital>, the diaries of a captain of Hebron's and of a London 
glove-maker, the exercise book of a seventeenth-century Welsh 
schoolgirl. I could piece the story together well enough, but at first 
I found it hard to fit it to the Woodilee that I knew-that decorous 
landscape, prim, determinate, without a hint of mystery; the bare 
hill-tops, bleak at seasons, but commonly of a friendly Pickwickian 
baldness, skirted with methodically-planned woods of selected conifers, 
and girdled with mathematical stone dykes; the even, ruled fields 
of the valley bottom; the studied moderation of the burns in a land 
meticulously drained; the dapper glass and stone and metal of the 
village. Two miles off; it was true, ran the noble untamed streams 
of Aller; beyond them the hills rose in dark fields to mid-sky, 
with the glen of the Rood making a sword-cut into their heart. 
</para>
<para>
But Woodilee itself -- whither had fled the savour? Once, I knew 
from the books, the great wood of Melanudrigill had descended from 
the heights and flowed in black waves to the village brink. But I 
could not re-create the picture out of glistening asphalted highway, 
singing telegraph wires, spruce dwellings, model pastures, and 
manicured woodlands.
</para>
<para>
Then one evening from the Hill of Deer I saw with other eyes. There 
was a curious leaden sky, with a blue break about sunset, so that the 
shadows lay oddly.  My first thought, as I looked at the familiar scene, 
was that, had I been a general in a campaign, I should have taken 
special note of Woodilee, for it was a point of vantage. It lay right 
in the pass between the Scottish midlands and the south-the pass of 
road and water -- yes, and -- shall I say ? -- of spirit, for it 
was in the throat of the hills, on the march between the sown and 
the desert. I was looking east, and to my left and behind me the 
open downs, farmed to their last decimal of capacity, were the ancient 
land of Manann, the capital province of Pictdom. The colliery head-gear 
on the horizon, the trivial moorish hill-tops, the darnbrod-pattern 
fields, could never tame wholly for me that land's romance, and on 
this evening I seemed to be gazing at a thing antique and wolfish, 
tricked out for the moment with a sheep's coat. . . To my right rose 
the huddle of great hills which cradle all our rivers. To them time 
and weather bring little change, yet in that eery light, which 
revealed in hard outline while it obscured in detail, they seemed 
too remote and awful to be the kindly giants with whose glens I 
daily conversed. . . . At my feet lay Woodilee, and a miracle had 
been wrought, for a gloom like the shadow of an eclipse seemed to
have crept over the parish. I saw an illusion, which I knew to be 
such, but which my mind accepted, for it gave me the vision I had 
been seeking.
</para>
<para>
It was the Woodilee of three hundred years ago. And my mind, once given 
the cue, set out things not presented by the illuded eye. . . . There 
were no highways-only tracks, miry in the bogs and stony on the braes, 
which led to Edinburgh on one hand and to Carlisle on the other. I saw 
few houses, and these were brown as peat, but on the knowe of the old 
kirkton I saw the four grey walls of the kirk, and the manse beside 
it among elders and young ashes. Woodilee was not now a parish lying 
open to the eye of sun and wind. It was no more than a tiny jumble 
of crofts, bounded and pressed in upon by something vast and dark, 
which clothed the tops of all but the highest hills, muffled the 
ridges, choked the glens and overflowed almost to the edge of the 
waters -- which lay on the landscape like a shaggy fur cast loosely 
down.  My mouth shaped the word &quot;Melanudrigill,&quot; and I knew that I 
saw Woodilee as no eye had seen it for three centuries, when, as its 
name tells, it still lay in the shadow of a remnant of the Wood of 
Calidon, that most ancient forest where once Merlin harped and 
Arthur mustered his men. . . .
</para>
<para>
An engine whistled in the valley, a signal-box sprang into light, and 
my vision passed. But as I picked my way down the hillside in the growing 
dusk I realised that all memory of the encircling forest had not gone 
from Woodilee in my childhood, though the name of Melanudrigill had 
been forgotten. I could hear old Jock Dodds, who had been keeper on 
Calidon for fifty years, telling tales for my delectation, as he sat 
and smoked on the big stone beside the smithy. He would speak of his 
father, and his father's father, and the latter had been a great hero 
with his flint-lock gun. &quot;He would lie in the moss or three on the winter 
mornin's, and him an auld man, and get the wild swans and the grey geese 
when they cam ower frae Clyde to Aller. Ay, and mony' s the deer he 
would kill.&quot; And when I pointed out that there were no deer in the 
country-side, Jock shook his head and said that in his grand-father's 
day the Black Wood was not all destroyed. &quot;There was a muckle lump on 
Windyways, and anither this side o' Reiverslaw.&quot; But if I asked for 
more about the wood, Jock was vague. Some said it had been first set 
by the Romans, others by Auld Michael Scott himself  &quot; A grand hidy-hole 
for beasts and an unco bit for warlocks.&quot; . . . Its downfall had begun 
long ago in the Dear Years, aild the last of it had been burnt for 
firewood in his father's day, in the winter of the Sixteen Drifty Days. . . 
</para>
<para>
I remembered, too, that there had been places still sacrosanct and 
feared. To Mary Cross, a shapeless stone in a field of bracken, no one 
would go in the spring or summer gloaming, but the girls decked it with 
wild flowers at high noon of Midsummer Day. There was a stretch of 
Woodilee burn, between the village and the now-drained Fennan Moss, 
where trout, it was believed, were never found. Above all, right in 
the heart of Reiverslaw's best field of turnips was a spring, which 
we children knew as Katie Thirsty, but which the old folk called the 
Minister's Well, and mentioned always with a shake of the head or a 
sigh, for it was there, they said, that the Minister of Woodilee had 
left the earth for Fairyland.
</para>
</preface>
</frontmatter>

<bookbody>
<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter I</chapnum>
<title>The Coming of the Minister</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THE</emph> Reverend David Sempill began his ministry in Woodilee on the 
twenty-sixth day of August in the year of grace sixteen hundred and 
forty-four. He was no stranger to the glen, for as a boy he had 
spent his holidays with his grandfather, who was the miller of Roodfoot. 
In that year when the horn of the Kirk was exalted the voice of a 
patron mattered less; Mr Sempill had been, as they said, &quot;popularly 
called,&quot; and so entered upon his office with the eager interest of the 
parish which had chosen him. A year before he had been licensed by the 
presbytery of Edinburgh; he was ordained in Woodilee in the present 
year on the last Sabbath of June, and &quot;preached in &quot; on the third 
Sabbath of August by the weighty voice of Mungo Muirhead, the minister 
of Kirk Aller. 'His plenishing -- chiefly books -- had come from 
Edinburgh on eight pack-horses, and, having escaped the perils of 
Carnwath Moss, was now set out in an upper chamber of the little damp 
manse, which stood between the kirk and Woodilee burn. A decent widow 
woman, Isobel Veitch by name, had been found to keep his house, and 
David himself, now that all was ready, had ridden over on his grey 
cob from his cousin's at Newbiggin and taken seisin of his new home. 
He had sung as he came in sight of Woodilee; he had prayed with bowed 
head as he crossed the manse threshold; but as he sat in the closet 
which he named his &quot;study,&quot; and saw his precious books on the shelf 
and the table before him on which great works would be
written, and outside the half-glazed window the gooseberry bushes of 
the garden and the silver links of the burn, he had almost wept with 
pure gratitude and content.
</para>
<para>
His first hour he had spent exploring his property. The manse was little 
and squat and gave lodging in its heather-thatched roof to more than 
one colony of bees. The front abutted on the kirkton road, save for a 
narrow strip of green edged with smooth white stones from the burn. 
The back looked on a garden, where stood a score of apple trees, the 
small wild fruit of which was scarcely worth the gathering. There was 
also a square of green for bleaching clothes, a gean tree, a plot of 
gillyflowers and monkshood, and another of precious herbs like clary, 
penny-royal, and marjoram. At one end of the manse stood a brewhouse 
and a granary or girnel, for the storing of the minister's stipend meal; 
at the other a stable for two beasts, a byre with three stalls, a 
hen-house of mud, and, in the angle of the dykes of the kirk loan, 
a midden among nettles.
</para>
<para>
Indoors the place was not commodious, and even on that warm August day 
a chill struck upward from the earthen floors. The low-ceiled lobby 
had no light but the open door. To the right of it was~; the living-room 
with a boarded ceiling, a wooden floor, and roughly plastered walls, 
where the minister's eight-day clock (by John Atchison, Leith, 1601) 
had now acclimatised itself. To the left lay Isobel's kitchen, with 
a door leading to the brew-house, and Isobel's press-bed at the back 
of it, and a small dog-hole of a cellar. The upper story was reached 
by a wooden staircase as steep as a ladder, which opened direct into 
the minister's bedroom -- an apartment of luxury, for it had a 
fireplace. One door led from it to the solitary guest-chamber; another 
to a tiny hearthless room, which was his study or closet, and which 
at the moment ranked in his mind as the most miraculous of his 
possessions.
</para>
<para>
David ranged around like a boy back from school, and indeed with 
his thick sandy hair and ruddy countenance and slim straight back 
he seemed scarcely to have outgrown the schoolboy.  He spilt the 
browst in the brewhouse and made a spectacle of himself with pease-meal 
in the girnel.  Isobel watched him anxiously out of doors, when he 
sampled the fruit of the apple trees, and with various rejected 
specimens took shots at a starling in the glebe.  Then in response 
to his shouts she brought him a basin of water and he washed off 
the dust of his morning ride. The August sun fell warm on the little 
yard; the sound of the burn in the glen, the clack of the kirkton 
smithy, the sheep far off on Windyways, the bees in the clove 
gilly-flowers, all melted into the soothing hum of a moorland 
noontide. The minister smiled as he scrubbed his cheeks, and Isobel's 
little old puckered apple-hued face smiled back. &quot;Ay, ~ir,&quot; she said, 
&quot;our lines is fallen intil a goodly place and a pleasant habitation. 
The Lord be thankit.&quot; And as he cried a fervent amen and tossed the 
towel back to her, a stir at the front door betokened his first 
visitors.
</para>
<para>
These were no less than three in number, neighbouring ministers who 
had ridden over on their garrons to bid the young man welcome to 
Woodilee. Presently stable and byre were crowded with their beasts, 
and the three brethren had bestowed themselves on the rough bench 
which adjoined the bleaching-ground. They would have their dinner 
at the village ordinary -- let not Mr Sempill put himself about -- 
they would never have come thus unannounced if they had thought that 
they would be pressed to a meal. But they allowed themselves be 
persuaded by the hospitable clamour of Isobel, who saw in such a 
function on her first day at the manse a social aggrandisement. 
&quot;Mr Sempill would think black burnin' shame if the gentlemen didna 
break breid. . . . There was walth o' provender in the house -- 
this moment she had put a hen in the pot -- she had a brace of 
muirfowl ready for brandering that had been sent from Chasehope 
that very morn. . . .&quot; The three smiled tolerantly and hopefully. 
&quot;Ye've gotten a rare Abigail, Mr Sempill. A woman o' mense and sense -- 
the manse o' Woodilee will be well guidit.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Reverend Mungo Muirhead had a vast shaven face set atop of a thick 
neck and a cumbrous body. He had a big thin-lipped mouth which shut 
tight like a lawyer's, a fleshy nose, and large grey eyes which at 
most times were ruminant as a cow's, but could on occasion kindle to 
shrewdness. His complexion was pale, and he was fast growing bald, so 
the impression at first sight was of a perfect mountain of countenance, 
a steep field of colourless skin. As minister of Kirk Aller he was 
the metropolitan of the company, and as became a townsman he wore decent 
black with bands, and boasted a hat. The Reverend Ebenezer Proudfoot 
from the moorland village of Bold was of a different cast. He wore 
the coarse grey homespun of the farmer, his head covering was a blue 
bonnet, his shoes were thick brogues with leather ties, and he had 
donned a pair of ancient frieze leggings.  A massive sinewy figure, 
there was in his narrow face and small blue eyes an air of rude 
power and fiery energy. The third; Mr James Fordyce from the neighbouring 
parish of Cauldshaw, was slight and thin, and pale either from 
ill-health or from much study. He was dressed in worn blue, and even 
in the August sun kept his plaid round his shoulders. In his face a 
fine brow was marred by the contraction of his lean jaws and a mouth 
puckered constantly as if in doubt or pain, but redeemed by brown 
eyes, as soft and wistful as a girl's.
</para>
<para>
At the hour of noon they sat down to meat. Mr Muirhead said a lengthy 
grace, which, since he sniffed the savour from the kitchen, he began 
appropriately with &quot;Bountiful Jehovah.&quot; All the dishes were set out 
at once on the bare deal table-a bowl of barley kail, a boiled fowl, 
the two brandered grouse, and a platter of oatcakes. The merchant in 
the Pleasance of Edinburgh had given his son a better plenishing than 
fell to the usual lot of ministers, for there were pewter plates and a 
knife and a fork for each guest. The three stared at the splendour, and 
Mr Proudfoot, as if to testify against luxury, preferred to pick the 
bones with his hands. The home-brewed ale was good, and all except 
Mr Fordyce did full justice to it, so that the single tankard, passed 
from hand to hand, was often refilled by Isobel.  &quot;Man, Mr David,&quot; 
cried Mr Muirhead in high good-humour, &quot;this is a great differ from 
the days of your predecessor. Worthy Mr Macmichael had never muckle 
but bannocks to set before his friends. But you've made us a feast 
of fat things.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David inquired about his predecessor, whom he remembered dimly 
from his boyhood as a man even then very old, who ambled about 
the parish on a white shelty.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He was a pious and diligent minister,&quot; said Mr Muirhead, &quot;but since 
ever I kenned him he was sore fallen in the vale of years. He would 
stick to the same 'ordinary' till he had thrashed it into stour. I've 
heard that he preached for a year and sax months on Exodus fifteen 
and twenty-seven, the twelve wells of water and three score and ten 
palm trees of Elim, a Sabbath to ilka well and ilka tree. I've a 
notion that he was never very strong in the intellectuals.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He wrestled mightily in prayer,&quot; said Mr Proudfoot, &quot;and he was great 
at fencing the Tables. Ay, sirs, he was a trumpet for the pure 
Gospel blast.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I doubt not he was a good man,  said Mr Fordyce, &quot;and is now gone 
to his reward.  But he was ower auld and feeble for a sinful 
country-side. I fear that the parish was but ill guided, and, as 
ye ken, there was whiles talk of a Presbytery visitation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I differ!&quot; cried Mr Muirhead.  &quot;I differ in toto. Woodilee has aye 
been famous for its godly elders.  Has it not Ephraim Caird, who was 
a member of Assembly and had a hand in that precious work of grace 
done in the East Kirk of St. Giles's two years syne? Has it not Peter 
Pennecuik, who has a gift of supplication like Mr Rutherford himself? 
Ay, and in the Bishops' War you'll mind how Amos Ritchie was staunch 
to uphold the Covenant with the auld matchlock that had been his 
gudesire's.  There's no lack of true religion in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's no lack of carnal pride, Mr Mungo. The folk of Woodilee are 
ready enough for any stramash in kirk or state. But what of their 
perishing souls, I ask? Are they striving to get a grip of Christ, 
as a bird scrapes with its claws at a stone wall? And do they bring 
forth works meet for repentance?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There was no clash of cauld morality in worthy Mr Macmichael,&quot; said 
Mr Proudfoot sourly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Is there the spirit of God in the people? That's what I want to ken. 
There's ill stories in the countryside anent Woodilee. The Black Wood 
could tell some tales if the trees could talk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead, having finished his meal and said a second grace, was 
picking his teeth in great good-humour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hoot toots, Mr James, you'll give our young brother a scunner of the 
place, to which it has pleased the Almighty to call him, before he has 
had a look at it himself. I'm not denying that the Wood is ower near 
Woodilee. It's a wanchancy thing for any parochine to have a muckle 
black forest flung around it like a maud.[*] And no doubt the Devil
walks about like a roaring lion in Woodilee as in other bits. But 
there's men of God here to resist him. I tell you, sirs, there have 
been more delations to the Presbytery for the sin of witchcraft 
in Woodilee than in any other parish on the water of Aller.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what does that prove, Mr Mungo?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That there's wealth of prayerful and eident [**] folk to confound 
the Adversary. This is no season to despair of Kirk and Covenant, when 
this day they hold the crown of the causeway. You'll no have heard 
of the astonishing mercy vouchsafed to in England? A post came to 
Kirk Aller yestreen, and it seems that three weeks syne there was 
a great battle beside the city of York, where our Scots wrought 
mightily, and our own Davie Leslie gave the King's horsemen their 
kail through the reek. What does that portend?&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* plaid. ** careful.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;It portends,&quot; said Mr Proudfoot, whom food did not mellow, &quot;that our 
pure and reformed Kirk of Scotland is linked more than ever with 
sectaries and antinomians and those, like the bloody and deceitful 
Cromwell, that would defile the milk of the Word with the sour whey 
of their human inventions. What avails a triumphant Kirk if its 
doctrine be sullied?
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead laughed. &quot;It portends nothing of the kind. The good work 
goes cannily on, and the noble task to which the Assembly of Divines at 
Westminster set itself is advanced by a long mile. Man, Eben, you 
folk at Bold live ower far from the world. It's the Kirk of Scotland 
that holds the balance today and can enforce its will on both King 
and sectaries. Two days back I had a letter from that gospel-loving 
nobleman, the Earl of Loudoun. . . 
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead was mounted on his high horse. He lit his pipe and for the 
space of half an hour dealt comprehensively with politics, labouring 
to show the happy posture of affairs for what he called the &quot;good cause.&quot; 
The Solemn League and Covenant bound all Scotland in a pact with the 
Lord, and presently all England would follow suit. There would he soon 
that comfortable sight which had been foretold by their godly fathers, 
a uniform Kirk and a pure Gospel established by law from London to 
the Orkneys, and a covenanted Sion to which all the peoples of the 
earth would go up. Mr Muirhead was eloquent, for he repeated a 
peroration which he had once used in the General Assembly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have heard,&quot; he concluded, &quot;that in Woodilee there was a signing of 
the Covenant by every soul that could make a scart with a pen. That for 
your encouragement, Mr David.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Fordyce shook his head. &quot;How many appended their names out of fear 
or from mere carnal policy? Mankind will run like jukes after a leader. 
I much misdoubt if there is any spiritual health to be got from 
following a multitude under duress. I would have left the choice to 
every man's conscience.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You're not sound,&quot; cried Mr Muirhead. &quot;You're shaky on the fundamentals, 
Mr James. I will confound you out of the Word. When King Josiah made a 
solemn covenant, did he leave it to ilka man's fancy to sign or no? Nay, 
he caused all -- all, I say -- in Jerusalem and Benjamin to stand to 
it See Second Chronicles thirty-four and thirty-two.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was a touch of asperity in the one disputant and of recalcitrance 
in the other, so David for good-fellowship's sake suggested that he might 
show them the manse in its new guise. But at that moment Isobel appeared 
with word that Chasehope was at the door seeking speech with the minister 
of Kirk Aller. At her back appeared the fiery head of the visitor, who 
was that Ephraim Caird whom Mr Muirhead had already praised as a pillar 
of the Covenant and who farmed the biggest tack in the parish. He was 
a big fellow, red as a fox, with a white freckled face, no eyebrows 
and greenish blue eyes, a man of over forty, whose muscular frame 
was now somewhat overlaid by flesh. His mouth was small and generally 
puckered together, a habit which gave him an air of thought and gravity. 
He had been an opponent of David Sempill before the call, but had 
acquiesced in the majority vote and had welcomed the new minister at 
the &quot;preaching in&quot; with a great show of goodwill.  Today he was 
apologetic and affable. He asked pardon for his intrusion-he would 
take neither bite nor sup -- he had heard that the ministers were 
at the manse and he begged a word with Mr Muirhead on Presbytery 
matters which would save him a journey to Kirk Aller, when he was 
busy with the bog hay.  So David took the other two to his closet 
and left Chasehope and Mr Muirhead to their colloquy.
</para>
<para>
Mr Proudfoot eyed with disapproval the books in the little dark chamber.  
He was content, he said, with the Bible and the Institutes of John 
Calvin and old Robert Rollock's commentary on the Prophet Daniel. He 
read the lettering on one volume, <ital>Sancti Clementi Opera,</ital> and on another, 
a work by a Dutch theologian, <ital>De Sancti Pauli Epistolis.</ital>  The word 
&quot;Saint&quot; roused his ire. &quot;Rags of Popery,&quot; he muttered, as he banged the 
hooks back on their shelves.  &quot;What for 'Saint' Paul and not 'Saint' 
Moses or 'Saint' Isaiah? It's a queer thing that Antichrist should set 
himself to miscall the godly Apostles of the New Testament and let the 
auld prophets alone. You're a young man, Mr Sempill, and, as is natural 
in youth, with but a small experience of religion.  Take the advice of 
an older man, and no clog yourself on the road to Heaven with ower 
much printit lear, when ye can put the whole Word of God in your pouch.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But Mr Fordyce looked at the shelves with greedy eyes. The moor-fowl 
at dinner had loosened a tooth, and now it came out in his hand and 
was wrapped carefully in his kerchief.  &quot;I have kept ilka tooth I 
have ever cast,&quot; he told the others, &quot;and they will go into my coffin 
with me that my bodily parts may be together at the Resurrection.&quot; 
&quot;Would you shorten the arm of the Lord?&quot; Mr Proudfoot had asked testily. 
&quot;Can He no gather your remnants from the uttermost parts of the earth?&quot;  
&quot;True, true,&quot; the other had answered gently, &quot;but it's just my fancy 
to keep all my dust in the one place.&quot; This ceremony over, he flung 
himself on the books like a hungry man on food. He opened them 
lovingly, read their titles, fingered them as if he could scarcely 
bear to part with them. &quot;You're no half my age,&quot; he told the owner, 
&quot;but you've twice as many books as there are in the Cauldshaw manse.  
You start well provided, Mr David.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The theology he knew already and approved of, but there were other 
works over which he shook a moralising head.  &quot;You've a hantle of 
Pagan writers, Mr David. I would counsel a young minister to apply 
himself rather to the Hebrew than to the Greek, for though the Greek 
was the tongue of the New Testament, it was also the tongue of lascivious 
poets and mocking philosophers, whereas the Hebrew was consecrate wholly 
to God. . . . But you have the Hebrew too, I see. Losh, here's the 
lexicon of Bamburgius, of which I have read but have never seen.  We 
must consult, Mr David. I've a new theory of the Hebrew accents on 
which I would like your judgment.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As he ran over the list he suddenly cried aloud with pleasure, and 
then checked himself almost shamefacedly. &quot;Preserve us, but here's 
Hieronymus Cardanus, and other astrologic works. Man, I've diverted 
myself whiles with the science of the stars, and can make a shape at 
calculating a nativity. I cannot see why the thing should not be 
turned to holy uses, as when the star guided the Wise Men of the 
East to Bethlehem. You and me must have long cracks some day. These 
books will be like the Pole Star to draw me to Woodilee, and I'm 
looking to see you soon at Cauldshaw. It's but a poor desert bit, 
but there have been precious occasions there and many an outpouring 
of grace. I'm sore troubled with the gravel, Mr David, and the goodwife 
has had a flux in the legs this twelvemonth back, but the Lord has 
showed me singular favour and my damps are lightened since a leech 
in Edinburgh prescribed a hyperion of bourtree and rue. . . 
We're a childless household, for we had but the one bairn and sax 
year syne the Lord gathered her to Himself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Downstairs Mr Muirhead had finished his talk and the three ministers 
took their leave -- they of Bold and Cauldshaw to jog the moorland 
miles to their homes, he of Kirk Aller to take his &quot;four-hours&quot; with 
Chasehope at Lucky Weir's in the clachan.  Each of the three kissed 
David on the cheek and blessed him after his fashion. &quot;May you live 
to be a pillar of the Kirk,&quot; said Mr Muirhead. &quot;Keep a Gospel walk,&quot; 
said Mr Proudfoot, &quot;on the narrow rigging of the truth.&quot; But Mr 
Fordyce took the young man's hand, after saluting him, and held it 
with a kind of wistful affection. &quot;I pray,&quot; he said, &quot;that your 
windows may be ever open towards Jerusalem.&quot;
</para>
<para>
When his guests had gone David Sempill explored once more his little 
domain, like a child who counts his treasures. Then, as the afternoon 
mellowed into evening, the slopes of the Hill of Deer, red with flowering 
heather, drew him for a walk. He wanted a wide prospect, to see his 
parish in its setting of hill and glen, and recall the landmarks now 
blurred in his childhood's memory.  His black coat and breeches were 
of Edinburgh make and too fine for moorland work, but he had stout 
country shoes and hose of ram's wool, the gift of his cousin's wife at 
Newbiggin, and he moved over the bent with the long stride of a shepherd. 
He crossed the burn of Mire, and saw below him the farm-town of 
Mire-hope, with barley and nettles at strife in the infield, and the 
run-rigs of the outfield feathered with very green oats. Presently he 
was on the Hill of Deer, where the long stacks of peats were drying so 
well that every breath of air sent up from them a fine flurry of dust. 
The Mirehope cattle, wretched little black beasts, were grazing under 
the charge of a herd-boy, and the Mirehope sheep, their coats matted 
with tar till they looked like monstrous slugs, were picking up an 
uneasy livelihood among the heather bushes, leaving tufts of smelly 
wool behind them on the scraggy twigs which were still charred from 
the March moorburn. He reached the low summit, and flung himself 
down on a patch of thymy turf between the whinstone screes, with 
his face to the valley.
</para>
<para>
His holiday mood still held. The visit of his ministerial brethren 
had not dashed him, for he saw their prosiness through a golden haze. 
Mr Muirhead was a stout warder on the walls of Sion, Mr Proudfoot a 
guardian of the purity of the Temple, and Mr Fordyce beyond question 
a saint, with his haggard face and his wistful eyes. It was Mr Fordyce 
who stuck in his memory. A lovable saint, with his cast teeth saved up 
to make easy the business of a bodily resurrection, his love of the 
stars, his pathetic bookishness.  David was full of the zest of his 
calling, but for himself he was ready to circumscribe its duties. Not 
for him to uphold the Kirk against its ill-wishers in the State; in 
that cause he would do battle when the need arose, but not till then. 
He left to others the task of keeping the canon of truth pure from 
alloy: he accepted the Kirk's doctrine loyally, but let others do 
the dogmatising. The work for which he longed was to save and comfort 
human souls.
</para>
<para>
Seen on that hilltop the minister of Woodilee was a different figure 
from that beheld by his colleagues in the dim light of the manse. His 
active form, his colour, his tumbled hair, spoke of the boy, but his 
face was not boyish. In its young contours there were already thought 
and resolution and spiritual fineness, and there was a steady ardour 
in the eyes. If his chin was the fighter's, his mouth was the comforter's. 
Five years before he had been set on a scholar's life. At the college 
he had been a noted Grecian, and in Robert Bryson's bookshop at the 
Sign of the Prophet Jonah in the West Bow his verses, Latin and 
English, had been praised by the learned. When religion called him 
it was as a challenge not to renounce but to perfect his past. A 
happy preoccupation with his dream made him blind to the harshness 
and jealousies which beset the Kirk, and he saw only its shining 
mission. The beauty which is to be found in letters seemed in very 
truth a part of that profounder beauty which embraced all earth 
and Heaven in the revelation of God. He had not ceased to be the 
humanist in becoming the evangelist.  Some had looked askance at him 
as too full of carnal learning for the sacred office, some as too 
cheerful for a shepherd of souls in a perishing world. But his critics 
as yet were few, for David carried with him a light and warmth which 
it was hard for the sourest to resist. &quot;He is a gracious youth,&quot; an 
old minister had said at his ordination.  &quot;May the Lord deal 
tenderly with him!&quot;
</para>
<para>
David's eyes from his perch on the hilltop rested first on the kirkton 
of Woodilee. He saw the manse among its trees, and the church with 
its thatched roof-the roof had been lead till Morton the Regent stripped 
it and melted it down for bullets. He saw the little beehive cottages 
in the clachan with the taller gable-end of Lucky Weir's ale-house.  
He saw the adjoining farm-towns -- the Mains, Chasehope, Nether Windyways, 
Crossbasket, the two Fennans, each with its patches of crops lifted 
well above the bogs of the glen. He saw the mill of Woodilee at present 
idle by the burn, and hay being cut on the side of Windyways hill, and 
what looked like the clipping of the miller's sheep.  In the bright 
evening the scene was all of peace and pastoral and David's heart 
kindled.  There dwelled his people, the little flock whom God had 
appointed him to feed. His heart yearned over them, and in a sudden 
glow of tenderness he felt that this sunset prospect of his parish 
was a new and more solemn ordination.
</para>
<para>
It was long before he lifted his eyes beyond the glen to the great 
encircling amphitheatre of the hills. At first he gazed at them in 
an abstraction, till childish memories came back to him and he 
began to name the summits to himself one by one. There was the bald 
top of the Lammerlaw, and the peak of the Green Dod, and far beyond 
the long line of the great Herstane Craig, which in that childhood 
had been the synonym for untravelled mystery. lie saw the green cleft 
in the hills where the Aller came down from its distant wells, and the 
darker glen of the Rood where bent was exchanged for rock and heather. 
He saw the very patches of meadow by Roodside which he had made his 
boyish playground. Such a hilltop prospect he had never before known, 
for a child lives in a magnified world, and finds immensity in short 
vistas. One thing struck hard on his mind.  Never before had he 
realised the extent of the forest ground. He remembered travelling 
to Roodfoot through trees, and all up the water of Rood there had 
been a drift of scrub. But it was the meadows and the open spaces that 
had been his kingdom, and his recollection was of a bare sunny land 
where whaup and peewit cried and the burns fell headlong from windy 
moors. But now, as he gazed, he realised that the countryside was 
mainly forest.
</para>
<para>
Everywhere, muffling the lower glen of the Woodilee burn and the 
immediate vale of the Aller, and climbing far up the hillside, was 
the gloom of trees. In the Rood glen there was darkness only at the 
foot, for higher up the woods thinned into scrub of oak and hazel, 
with the knees of the uplands showing through it. The sight powerfully 
impressed his fancy. Woodilee was a mere clearing in a forest. This 
was the <ital>Silva Caledonis</ital> of which old writers spoke, the wood which 
once covered all the land and in whose glades King Arthur had dwelt. 
He remembered doggerel Latin of Merlin the Bard and strange sayings 
of True Thomas -- old wives' tales which concerned this sanctuary. He 
had grown up beside it and had not known of it, and now he had come 
back to a revelation. <ital>Silva Caledonis!</ital> Up the Rood water lay the 
house of Calidon. Were the names perhaps the same?
</para>
<para>
The young man's fancy was quick to kindle, and he looked with new 
eyes at the great cup of green, broken only at one spot by Aller side 
with the flash of water. At first in the soft evening light it had 
worn a gracious and homely air, even the darkness of the pines seemed 
luminous, and the feathery top of a patch of birches was like the smoke 
of household fires. . . . But as the sun sank behind the Rood hills a 
change seemed to come over the scene. The shade became gloom, a hostile 
impenetrable darkness. The birches were still like smoke, but a turbid 
smoke from some unhallowed altar.  The distant shallows of Aller caught 
a ray of the dying sun and turned to blood. . . . The minister shivered 
and then laughed at himself for his folly.
</para>
<para>
The evening deepened in the hollows, though the hilltops were still 
faintly bright. The great wood seemed now to be a moving thing, a 
flood which lapped and surged and might at any moment overflow the 
sandspit which was Woodilee. Again the minister laughed at himself, 
but without conviction. It must be an eery life under the shadow of 
that ancient formless thing. Woodilee could not be quite as other 
parishes, or its folk like other folk. The Wood, this hoary Wood of 
Caledon, must dominate their thoughts and form their characters. . . . 
Had not someone called it the Black Wood ? -- Yes, they had spoken 
of it that afternoon. Mr Muirhead had admitted that it must be queer 
to live so near it, and Mr Fordyce had shaken his head solemnly 
and hinted at tales that could be told if the trees would speak. Did 
the Devil use the place as a stronghold and seduce the foolish into 
its shadows? Could it be said of a lost soul, <ital>Itur in antiquam silvam?</ital> 
David was less superstitious than most men, but he had too ready a 
fancy and a mind too well stored with learning to be easy at the 
thought. Already he felt that he had found an antagonist. Was Woodilee 
to prove a frontier-post for God's servant against the horrid 
mysteries of heathendom? . . . He gave a sudden start, for a voice 
had sounded behind him.
</para>
<para>
The voice was singing -- a charm against bogles which he remembered 
himself using as a child:
</para>
<song><verse><line>
&quot;Wearie, Ovie, gang awa,</line><line>
Haste ye fyrth o' house an' ha', </line><line>
Ower the muir and down the burn </line><line>
Wearie, Ovie, ne'er return,&quot;
</line></verse></song>
<para>
A grotesque figure emerged from the dusk. It was a tall fellow, who 
seemed to have been broken in the middle, for he walked almost 
doubled up. His face, seen in the half-light, was that of a man of 
thirty or so, with a full black beard and red protuberant lips.  
His clothes were ruinous, an old leather jerkin which gaped at every 
seam, ragged small-clothes of frieze, and for hosen a wrapping of 
dirty clouts. There were no shoes on his feet, and his unwashed 
face was dark as a berry. In his hand he had a long ash pole, and 
on his head a blue cowl so tight that it was almost a skull-cap.
</para>
<para>
David recognised the figure for Daft Gibbie, the village natural, 
who had greeted him with mewing; and shouting at his ordination. 
In the clachan street he had seemed an ordinary deformed idiot -- 
what was known locally as an &quot;object &quot; -- but up on this twilight 
hilltop he was like an uncouth revenant from an older world.  
The minister instinctively gripped his staff tighter, but Gibbie's 
intention was of the friendliest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A braw guid e'en to ye, Mr Sempill, sir. I saw ye tak' the hill 
and I bode to follow, for I was wantin' to bid ye welcome to Woodilee. 
Man, ye gang up the brae-face like a maukin [*].  Ower fast, I says 
to mysel', ower fast for a man o' God, for what saith the Word, 
'He that believeth shall not make haste!'&quot;
</para>
<para>
The creature spoke in a voice of great beauty and softness -- the 
voice rather of a woman than of a man. And as he spoke he bowed, 
and patted the minister's arm, and peered into his face with bright 
wild eyes. Then he clutched David and forced him round till again 
he was looking over the Wood.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Hill o' Deer's a grand bit for a prospect, sir, for is it no 
like the Hill o' Pisgah from which ye can spy the Promised Land? Ye 
can lift up your eyes to the hills, and ye can feast them on the 
bonny haughs o' the Aller, or on the douce wee clachan o' Woodilee, 
wi' the cots sittin' as canty round the kirk as kittlins round an 
auld cat.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was looking at the Wood,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
The man laughed shrilly. &quot;And a braw sicht it is in the gloamin' frac 
the Hill o' Deer. For ye can see the size o' the muckle spider's wab, 
but doun in the glen ye're that clamjamphried wi' michty trees that 
your heid spins like a peery and your e'en are dozened. It's a 
uncothing the Wud, Mr Sempill, sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you know your ways in it, Gibbie?&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* a hare.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Me! I daurna, enter it. I keep the road, for I'm feared o' yon dark 
howes.&quot; Then he laughed again, and put his mouth close to the minister's 
ear. &quot;Not but what I'll tak' the Wud at the proper season. Tak' the 
Wud, Mr Sempill, like other folk in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He peered in the minister's face to see if he were understood. 
Satisfied that he was not, he laughed again.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tak' Gibbie's advice, sir, and no gang near the Wud. It's nae place 
for men o' God, like yoursel', sir, and puir Gibbie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do they call it the Black Wood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Gibbie spat.  &quot;Incomin' bodies, nae doot,&quot; he said in contempt. &quot;But 
it's just the Wud wi' nae 'black' aboot it. But ken ye the name that 
auld folk gie'd it?&quot;  He became confidential again. &quot;They ca'd it 
Melanudrigill,&quot; he whispered.
</para>
<para>
David repeated the word.  His mind had been running on heathen 
learning and he wondered if the name were Greek.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That might mean the 'place of dark waters,'&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Na, na.  Ye're wrong there, Mr Sempill. There's nae dark waters in 
Melanudrigill. There's the seven burns that rin south, but they're a as 
clear as Aller. But dinna speak that name to ither folk, Mr Sempill, 
and dinna let on that Gibbie telled ye. It's a wanchancy name. Ye can 
cry it in a safe bit like the Hill o' Deer, but if ye was to breathe 
it in the Wud unco things might happen. I daurna speak my am name 
among the trees.'
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your name is Gibbie. Gibbie what?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man's face seemed to narrow in fear and then to expand in confidence. 
&quot;I can tell it to a minister o' the Word. It's Gilbert Niven. Ken ye where 
I got that name? In the Wud, sir. Ken ye wha gie'd it me? The Guid Folk. 
Ye'll no let on that I telled ye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The night was now fallen, and David turned for home, after one last 
look at the pit of blackness beneath him. The idiot hobbled beside him, 
covering the ground at a pace which tried even his young legs, and 
as he went he babbled.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tak' Gibbie's advice and keep far frae the Wud, Mr Sempill, and if 
ye're for Roodfoot or Calidon haud by the guid road. I've heard tell 
that in the auld days, when there was monks at the kirkton, they bode 
to gang out every year wi' bells and candles and bless the road to 
keep it free o' bogles. But they never ventured into the Wud, honest 
men. I'll no say but what a minister is mair powerfu' than a monk, 
but an eident body will run nae risks. Keep to fine caller bits like 
this Hill o' Deer, and if ye want to traivel gang west by Chasehope 
or east by Kirk Aller. There's nocht for a man o' God in the Wud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are there none of my folk there?&quot;
</para>
<para>
For a second Gibbie stopped as if thunderstruck. &quot;Your folk!&quot; he cried. 
&quot;In the Wud!&quot; Then he perceived David's meaning.  &quot;Na, na. There's 
nae dwallin' there. Nether Fennan is no far off and Reiversiaw is a 
bowshot from the trees, but to bide in the Wud !-Na, na, a man would 
be sair left to himsel' ere he ventured that! There's nae hoose biggit [*] 
by human hand that wadna be clawed doun by bogles afore the wa' 
rase a span frae the grund.&quot;
</para>
<para>
At the outfield of Mirehope Gibbie fled abruptly, chanting like a night bird.
</para>
<footnote>
[*] built.
</footnote>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter II</chapnum>
<title>The Road to Calidon</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THE</emph> minister sat at his supper of porridge and buttermilk when 
Isobel broke in on him, her apple-hued face solemn and tearful.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's ill news frae up the water, Mr Sempill. It's Marion Simpson, 
her that's wife to Richie Smail, the herd o' the Greenshiel. Marion, 
puir body, has been ill wi' a wastin' the past twalmonth, and now it 
seems she's near her release. Johnnie Dow, the packman, is ben the house, 
and he has brocht word that Richie is fair dementit, and that the wife 
is no like to last the nicht, and would the minister come up to the 
Greenshiel. They've nae bairns, the Lord be thankit; but Richie and 
Marion have aye been fell fond o' ither, and Richie's an auld exercised 
Christian and has been many times spoken o' for the eldership. I doot 
ye'll hae to tak' the road, sir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was his first call to pastoral' duty, and, though he had hoped to be 
at his books by candle-light, David responded gladly. He put his legs 
into boots, saddled his grey cob, flung his plaid round his shoulders, 
and in ten minutes was ready to start. Isobel watched him like a mother.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll hae a cup o' burned yill [*] waitin' for ye to fend off the cauld -- 
no but what it's a fine lownf nicht. Ye ken the road, sir? Up by 
Mirehope and; round by the Back o' the Hill.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's a quicker way by Roodfoot, and on this errand there's 
no time to lose.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But that's through the Wud,&quot; Isobel gasped. &quot;It's no me that would go 
through the Wud in the dark, nor naebody in Woodilee. But a minister 
is different, nae doot.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
[*] ale 
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;The road is plain?&quot; he asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Aye, it's plain eneuch. There's naething wrong wi' the road. But 
it's  an eerie bit when the sun's no shinin'. But gang your ways, 
sir, for a man o' God is no like common folk. Ye'll get a mune to 
licht ye back.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David rode out of the kirkton, and past the saughs and elders which 
marked the farm of Crossbasket, till the path dipped into the glen 
of the Woodilee burn and the trees began. Before he knew he was among 
them, old gnarled firs standing sparsely among bracken. They were 
thin along the roadside, but on the hill to his right and down in the 
burn's hollow they made a cloud of darkness. The August night still 
had a faint reflected light, and the track, much ribbed by tree roots, 
showed white before him. The burn, small with the summer drought, made 
a faraway tinkling, the sweet scents of pine and fern were about him, 
the dense boskage where it met the sky had in the dark a sharp marmoreal 
outline. The world was fragrant and quiet; if this be the Black Wood, 
thought David, I have been in less happy places.
</para>
<para>
But suddenly at a turn of the hill the trees closed in. It was almost as 
if he had stripped and dived into a stagnant pool. The road now seemed 
to have no purpose of its own, but ran on sufferance, slinking furtively 
as the Wood gave it leave, with many meaningless twists, as if unseen 
hands had warded it off. His horse, which had gone easily enough so far, 
now needed his heel in its side and many an application of his staff. 
It shied at nothing visible, jibbed, reared, breathing all the 
while as if its wind were touched. Something cold seemed to have descended 
on David's spirits, which, as soon as he was aware of it, he tried to 
exorcise by whistling a bar or two, and then by speaking aloud. He 
recited a psalm, but his voice, for usual notably full and mellow, 
seemed not to carry a yard. It was forced back on him by the trees. 
He tried to shout with no better effect. There came an echo which 
surprised him till he perceived that it was an owl. Others answered 
and the place was filled with their eldritch cries. One flapped 
across the road not a yard from him, and in a second his beast was 
on its haunches.
</para>
<para>
He was now beyond the throat of the glen, and the Woodilee burn had left 
him, going its own way into the deeps of Fennan Moss, where the wood was 
thin. The road plucked up courage and for a little ran broad and 
straight through a covert of birches. Then the pines closed down again, 
this time with more insistence, so that the path was a mere ladder 
among gnarled roots. Here there were moths about a queer thing, David 
thought -- white glimmering I creatures that brushed his face and made 
his horse -- half crazy. He had ridden at a slow jog, but the beast's 
neck and flanks were damp with sweat. Presently he had to dismount and 
lead it, testing every step with his foot, for there seemed to be 
ugly scaurs breaking away on his left. The owls kept up a continuous 
calling, and there was another bird with a note like a rusty saw. He 
tried to whistle, to shout, to laugh, but his voice seemed to come 
out of folds of cloth. He thought it was his plaid, but the plaid 
was about his chest and shoulders and far from his mouth. . . . 
And then, at one step the Wood ceased and he was among meadows.
</para>
<para>
He knew the place, for after the darkness of the trees the land, though 
the moon had not risen, seemed almost light. There in front was the 
vale down which Aller flowed, and on the right was his own familiar 
glen of Rood. Now he could laugh at his oppression -- now that he was 
among the pleasant fields where he had played as a boy. .  . Why had 
he forgotten about the Black Wood, for it had no part in his memories? 
True, he had come always to Roodfoot by the other road behind the Hill 
of Deer, but there were the dark pines not a mile off -- he must have 
adventured many times within their fringes. He thought that it was 
because a child is shielded by innocence from ugliness. . . . And yet, 
even then, he had had many nightmares and fled from many bogles. But 
not from the Wood. . . . No doubt it was the growing corruption of 
a man's heart.
</para>
<para>
The mill at Roodfoot stood gaunt and tenantless, passing swiftly into 
decay. He could see that the mill-wheel had gone, and its supports 
stood up like broken teeth; the lade was choked with rushes; the line 
of a hill showed through the broken rigging. He had known of this, but 
none the less the sight gave him a pang, for David was a jealous 
conserver of his past. . . . But as the path turned up the glen beside 
the brawling Rood he had a sudden uplifting of spirit. This could not 
change, this secret valley, whose every corner he had quartered, whose 
every nook was the home of a delightful memory. He felt again the old 
ardour, when, released from Edinburgh, he had first revisited his 
haunts, tearful with excited joy. The Wood was on him again, but a 
different wood, his own wood.  The hazels snuggled' close to the 
roadside, and the feathery birches and rowans made a canopy, not a 
shadow. The oaks were ancient friends, the alders old playmates.  
His horse had recovered its sanity, and David rode through the 
dew-drenched night in a happy rapture of remembrance.
</para>
<para>
He was riding up Rood-that had always been the thing he had hoped to 
do. He had never been even so far as Calidon before, for a boy's 
day's march is short. But he had promised himself that some day when 
he was a man he would have a horse and ride to the utmost springs -- 
to Roodhopefoot, to the crinkle in Moss Fell where Rood was born.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Up the water&quot; had always been like a spell in his ear. He remembered 
lying in bed at night and hearing a clamour at the mill door: it was 
men from up the water, drovers from Moffat, herds from the back of 
beyond, once a party of soldiers from the south. And up the water lay 
Calidon, that ancient castle. The Hawkshaws were a name in a dozen 
ballads, and the tales of them in every old wife's mouth. Once they 
had captained all the glens of Rood and Aller in raids to the Border, 
and when Musgrave and Salkeld had led a return foray it was the 
Hawkshaws that smote them mightily in the passes. He had never seen 
one of the race; the men were always at the wars or at the King's court; 
but they had filled his dreams. One fancy especially was of a little 
girl -- a figure with gold hair like King Malcolm's daughter in the 
&quot;Red Etin of Ireland&quot; tale -- whom he rescued from some dire peril, 
winning the thanks of her tall mail-clad kin.  In that dream he too 
had been mail-clad, and he laughed at the remembrance. It was a far 
cry from that to the sedate minister of Woodilee.
</para>
<para>
As he turned up the road to the Greenshiel he remembered with compunction 
his errand. He had been amusing himself with vain memories when he 
was on the way to comfort a bed of death. Both horse and rider were 
in a sober mood when they reached the sheiling, the horse from much 
stumbling in peat-bogs, and the man from reflections on his 
unworthiness.
</para>
<para>
Rushlights burned in the single room, and the door and the one window 
stood open. It was a miserable hut of unmortared stones from the hill, 
the gaps stuffed with earth and turf, and the roof of heather thatch. 
One glance showed him that he was too late. A man sat on a stool by 
the dead peat-fire with his head in his hands.  A woman was moving 
beside the box bed and unfolding a piece of coarse linen. The shepherd 
of the Greenshiel might be an old exercised Christian, but there were 
things in that place which had no warrant from the Bible. A platter 
full of coarse salt lay at the foot of the bed, and at the top 
crossed twigs of ash.
</para>
<para>
The woman -- she was a neighbouring shepherd's wife-stilled her 
keening at the sound of David's feet.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's himsel',&quot; she cried. &quot;Richie, it's the mmister; Wae's me, sir, 
but ye' re ower late to speed puir Mirren. An hour syne she gaed 
to her reward -- just slipped awa' in a fit o' hoastin'.[*]  I've 
strauchten'd the corp and am gettin' the deid claes ready -- Mirren 
was aye prood o' hers and keepit them fine and caller wi' gall and 
rosmry. Come forrit, sir, and tak' a look on her that's gane. There 
was nae deid-thraws wi' Mirren, and she's lyin' as peacefu' as a 
bairn. Her face is sair faun in, but I mind when it was the bonniest 
face in a Rood-water.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
[*] coughing.
</footnote>
<para>
The dead woman lay with cheeks like wax, a coin on each eye so that 
for the moment her face had the look of a skull. Disease had sculptured 
it to an extreme fineness, and the nose, the jaw, and the lines of 
the forehead seemed chiselled out of ivory. David had rarely looked 
on death, and the sight gave him a sense first of repulsion and then 
of an intolerable pathos. He scarcely heard the clatter of the 
shepherd's wife.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She's been deem' this mony a day and now she's gane joyfully to 
meet her Lord. Eh, but she was blithe to gang in the hinner end. 
There was a time when she was sweir to leave Richie. 'Elspet,' she. 
says to me, 'what will that puir man o' mine dae his lee lane?' and 
I aye says to her, 'Mirren,. my wumman, the Lord's a grand 'provider, 
and Richie will haud fast by Him. Are not twa sparrows,' I says -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
David went over to the husband on the creepie by the fireside, and 
laid his hand on his shoulder. The man sat hunched in a stupor of misery.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Richie,&quot; he said, &quot;if I'm too late to pray with Marion, I can pray 
with you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He prayed, as he always prayed, not in a mosaic of Scripture texts, 
but in simple words; and as he spoke he felt the man's shoulder under 
his hand 'shake as with a sob.  He prayed with a sincere emotion, for 
he had been riding through a living coloured world and now felt like 
an' icy blast the chill and pallor of death. Also he felt the pity of 
this lifelong companionship broken, and the old man left solitary. 
When he had finished, Richie lifted his face from his hands, and 
into his eyes which had been blank as a wall came the wholesome dimness 
of tears.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'm no repinin',&quot; he said. &quot;The Lord gave and the Lord has taken away, 
and I bless His name. What saith the Apostle-Mirren has gane to be with 
Christ, whilk is far better. There was mony a time when the meal-ark 
was toom,[*] and the wind and weet cam in through the baulks, and the 
peats wadna kindle, and we were baith hungry and cauld. But Mirren's bye 
wi' a' that, for she's bielded in the everlasting arms and she's suppin' 
rich at the Lord's am table. But eh, sir, I could wish it had been His 
will to have ta'en me wi' her. I'm an auld man, and there's nae weans,[**] 
and for the rest o' my days I'll be like a beast in an unco loan. [***] 
God send they binna' mony.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* empty. ** children. *** strange lane. 
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;The purposes of the Lord are true and altogether righteous. If He 
spares you, Richie, it's because He has still work for you to do on 
this earth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I kenna what it can be. My fit's beginnin' to lag on the hill, and ony 
way I'm guid for nocht but sheep. Lambin's and clippin's and spainin's [*] 
is ower puir a wark for the Lord to fash wi'.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* weanings.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Whatever you put your hand to is the work of the Lord, if you keep 
His fear before you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Maybe, sir.&quot; The man rose from his stool and revealed a huge gaunt 
frame, much bowed at the shoulders. He peered in the rushlight at 
the minister's face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye're a young callant to be a minister. I was strong on your side, sir, 
when ye got the call, for your preachin' was like a rushin' michty wind. 
I mind I repeated the heids o' your sermon to Mirren.
</para>
<para>
. . . Ye've done me guid, sir -- I think it's maybe the young voice o' 
ye. Ye wad get the word from johnnie Dow. Man, it was kind to mak 
siccan haste'. I wish -- I wish ye had seen Mirren in life. . . Pit 
up anither petition, afore ye gang-for a blessin' on this stricken 
house and on an auld man who has his title sure in Christ but has an 
unco rebellious heart.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It seemed to David as he turned from the door, where the shepherd stood 
with uplifted arm, that a benediction had been given, but not by him.
</para>
<para>
The moon had risen and the glen lay in a yellow light, with the high hills 
between Rood and Aller shrunk to mild ridges. The stream caught the glow 
and its shallows were like silver chased in amber. The young man's heart 
was full with the scene which he had left. Death was very near to men', 
jostling them at every corner, whispering in their ear at kirk and 
market, creeping between them and their firesides.  Soon the shepherd 
of the Greenshiel would lie beside his wife; in a little, too, his own 
stout limbs would be a heap of dust. How small and frail seemed the 
life in that cottage, as contrasted with the, rich pulsing world of the 
woods and hills and their serene continuance. But it was they that were 
the shadows in God's sight. The immortal thing was the broken human 
heart that could say in its frailty that its Redeemer liveth. &quot;Thou, 
Lord,&quot; he repeated to himself, &quot;in the beginning hast laid the foundations 
of the earth, and the heavens are the work of Thy hands.  They shall 
perish, but Thou shalt endure; they all shall wax old as doth a garment, 
and as a vesture shalt Thou change them, and they shall be changed: 
but Thou art the same, and Thy years shall not fail.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But as the road twined among the birches David's mood became insensibly 
more pagan. He could not resist the joy 'of the young life that ran 
in his members, and which seemed to be quickened by the glen of his 
childhood. Death was the portion of all, but youth was still far 
from death. . . . The dimness and delicacy of the landscape, the lines 
of hill melting into a haze under the moon,~ went to his head like 
wine. It was a world transfigured and spell-laden. On his left the 
dark blotch which was Melanudrigill lay like a spider over the hillsides 
and the mouths of the glens, but all in front and to his right was 
kindly and golden. He had come back to his own country and it held 
out its arms to him. &quot;Salve, o' venusta Sirmio,&quot; he cried, and an 
owl answered.
</para>
<para>
The glen road was reached, but he did not turn towards Roodfoot. He 
had now no dread of the wood of Melanudrigill, but he had a notion to 
stand beside Rood water, where it flowed in a ferny meadow which had 
been his favourite fishing-ground. So he pushed beyond the path into 
a maze of bracken and presently was at the stream's edge.
</para>
<para>
And then, as he guided his horse past a thicket of alders, he came 
full upon a little party of riders who had halted there.
</para>
<para>
There were three of them -- troopers, they seemed, with buff caps and 
doublets and heavy cavalry swords, and besides their own scraggy 
horses there was a led beast. The three men were consulting when 
David stumbled on them, and at the sight of him they had sprung 
apart and laid hands on their swords. But a second glance had 
reassured them.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Good e'en to you, friend,&quot; said he who appeared to be the leader. 
&quot;You travel late.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was not an encounter which David would have sought, for wandering 
soldiery had a bad name in the land.  Something of this may have been 
in the other's mind, for his next words were an explanation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You see three old soldiers of Leven's,&quot; he said, &quot;on the way north 
after the late crowning mercy vouchsafed to us against the malignants. 
&quot;We be Angus men and have the general's leave to visit our homes. 
If you belong hereaways you can maybe help us with the road. Ken you a 
place of the name of Calidon?&quot;
</para>
<para>
To their eyes David must have seemed a young farmer or a bonnet-laird 
late on the road from some errand of roystering or sweethearting.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I lived here as a boy,&quot; he said, &quot;and I'm but now returned. Yet I think 
I could put you on your way to Calidon. The moon's high.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's a braw moon,&quot; said the second trooper, &quot;and it lighted us fine 
down Aller, but the brawest moon will not discover you a dwelling in 
a muckle wood, if you kenna the road to it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The three had moved out from the shade of the alders and were now 
clear under the sky. Troopers, common troopers and shabby at that, riding 
weary ill-conditioned beasts. The nag which the third led was a mere 
rickle of bones. And yet to David's eye there was that about them which 
belied their apparent rank. They had spoken in the country way, but 
their tones were not those of countrymen. They had not the air of a gaunt 
Jock or a round-faced Tam from the plough-tail. All three were slim and 
the hands which grasped the bridles were notably fine. They held 
themselves straight like courtiers, and in their voices lurked a 
note as of men accustomed to command. The leader was a dark man with a 
weary thin face and great circles round his eyes; the second a tall fellow, 
with a tanned skin, a cast in his left eye and a restless dare-devil 
look; the third, who seemed to be their groom, had so far not spoken and 
had stood at the back with the led horse, but David had a glimpse above 
his ragged doublet of a neat small moustache and a delicate chin.  
&quot;Leven has good blood in his 'ranks,&quot; he thought, &quot;for these three never 
came out of a but-and-ben.&quot; Moreover, the ordinary trooper on his way 
home would not make Calidon a house of call.
</para>
<para>
He led them up to the glen road, intending to give them directions about 
their way, but there he found that his memory had betrayed him. He knew 
exactly in which nook of hill lay Calidon, but for the life of him he 
could not remember how the track ran to it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll have to be your guide, sirs,&quot; he told them. &quot;I can take you to 
Calidon, but I cannot tell you how to get there.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;We're beholden to you, sir, but it's a sore burden on your good-nature. 
Does your own road lie in that airt?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The young man laughed &quot;The night is fine and I'm in no haste to be 
in bed. I'll have you at Calidon door in half an hour.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Presently he led them off the road across a patch of heather, forded 
Rood at a shallow, and entered a wood of birches. The going was bad 
and the groom with the led horse had the worst of it. The troopers 
were humane men, for they seemed to have a curious care of their servant.  
It was &quot;Canny now, James there's bog on the left,&quot; or &quot;Take tent of 
that howe&quot;; and once or twice, when there was a difficult passage, one 
or the other would seize the bridle of the led horse till the groom 
had passed. David saw from the man's face that he was grey with fatigue.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Get you' on my beast,&quot; he said, &quot;and I'll hold the bridle. I can find 
my way better on foot. And do you others each take a led horse.  The 
road we're travelling is none so wide, and we'll make better speed 
that way.
</para>
<para>
The troopers docilely did as they were bidden, and the weary groom was 
hoisted on David's grey gelding. The change seemed to 'ease him and he 
lost his air of heavy preoccupation and let his eyes wander. The birch 
wood gave place to a bare hillside, where even the grey slipped among 
the screes and the four horses behind sprawled and slithered. They 
crossed a burn, surmounted another ridge,, and entered a thick wood 
of oak which David knew cloaked the environs of Calidon and which made 
dark travelling even in the strong moonlight. Great boulders were 
hidden in the moss, withered boughs' hung low over the path, and 
now and then would come a patch of scrub so dense that it had to be 
laboriously circumvented. The groom on the grey was murmuring to 
himself, and to David's amazement it was Latin.' <ital>&quot;Ibant obscuri sola 
sub nocte per umbram,&quot;</ital> were the words he spoke.
</para>
<para>
David capped them.
</para>
<poem><verse><line>
&quot;Perque domos Ditis vacuas et mania regna,</line><line>
Quale per incertam lunam...&quot;
</line></verse></poem>
<para>
The man on the horse laughed, and David, looking up, had his first 
proper sight of his face. It was a long face, very pale, unshaven 
and dirty, but it was no face of a groom. The thin aquiline nose, the 
broad finely arched brow, were in themselves impressive, but the 
dominant feature was the eyes. They seemed to be grey -- ardent, commanding, 
and yet brooding. David was so absorbed by this sudden vision that he 
tripped over a stone and almost pulled the horse down.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I did not look,&quot; said the rider, in a voice low-pitched and musical, 
&quot;I did not look to find a scholar in these hills.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nor did I know,&quot; said David, &quot;that Virgil was the common reading of 
Leven's men.&quot;
</para>
<para>
They had reached a field of wild pasture studded with little thorns, 
in the middle of which stood a great stone dovecot. A burn falling in 
a deep ravine made. a moat on one side of the tower of Calidon, which 
now rose white like marble in the moon. They crossed the ravine not 
without trouble, and joined the main road from the glen, which ended 
in a high-arched gate round which clustered half a dozen huts.'
</para>
<para>
At the sound of their arrival men ran out of the hut's and one seized 
the bridle of the leader.. David and the groom had now fallen back, and 
it was the dark man who did the talking. These were strange troopers, for 
they sat their horses like princes, so that the hand laid on the bridle 
was promptly dropped.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We would speak with the laird of Calidon,&quot; the dark man said. &quot;Stay, 
carry this ring to him. He will know what it means.&quot; It seemed curious 
to David that the signet given to the man was furnished by the groom.
</para>
<para>
In five minutes the servant returned. &quot;The laird waits on ye, sirs. 
I'll tak' the beasts, and your mails, if ye've ony. Through the muckle 
yett an it please ye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David turned to go. &quot;I've brought you to Calidon,&quot; he said, &quot;and now 
I'll take my leave.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no,&quot; cried the dark man. &quot;You'll come in and drink a cup after the 
noble convoy you've given us. Nicholas Hawkshaw will be blithe to 
welcome you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David would have refused, for the hour was already late and he was many 
miles from Woodilee, had not the groom laid his hand on his arm. &quot;Come,&quot; 
he said.  &quot;I would see my friend, the student of Virgil, in another light 
than the moon,&quot; and to his amazement the young man found that it was a 
request which he could not deny. There was a compelling power in 
that quiet face, and he was strangely loth to part from it.
</para>
<para>
The four dismounted, the three troopers staggering with stiff bones. 
The dark man's limp did not change after the first steps, and David 
saw that he was crippled in the left leg. They passed through the gate 
into a courtyard, beyond which rose the square massif of the tower. 
In the low doorway a candle wavered, under a stone which bore the 
hawk in lure which was the badge of the house.
</para>
<para>
The three men bowed low to the candle, and David saw that it was 
held by a young girl.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter III</chapnum>
<title>Guests In Calidon Tower</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>&quot;WILL</emph> you enter, sirs?&quot; said the girl. She was clad in some dark 
homespun stuff with a bright-coloured screen thrown over her head 
and shoulders. She held the light well in front of her, so that David 
could not see her face. He would fain have taken his leave, for it 
seemed strange to be entering Calidon thus late at e'en in the company 
of strangers, but the hand of the groom on his arm restrained him. 
&quot;You will drink a stirrup-cup, friend. The night is yet young and 
the moon is high.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A steep stairway ran upward a yard or two from the doorway.  Calidon 
was still a Border keep, where the ground-floor had once been used for 
byres and stables, and the inhabitants had dwelt in the upper stories.  
The girl moved ahead of them. &quot;Will you be pleased to follow me, 
sirs? My uncle awaits you above.&quot;
</para>
<para>
They found themselves in a huge chamber which filled the width of the 
tower, and, but for a passage and a further staircase, its length. A 
dozen candles, which seemed to have been lit in haste, showed that it 
was raftered with dark oak beams, and that the ~alls were naked stone 
where they were not covered with a coarse arras. The floor, of a great 
age, was bare wood blackened with time and use, and covered with a 
motley of sheepskins and deerskins. Two long oak tables and a great oak 
bench made the chief furniture, but there were a multitude of stools of 
the same heavy ancient make, and by a big open fireplace two ancient 
chairs of stamped Spanish leather.  A handful of peats smouldered on 
the hearth, and the thin blue smoke curled upward to add grime to an 
immense coat-of-arms carved in stone and surmounted by a forest of 
deer horns and a trophy of targes and spears.
</para>
<para>
David, accustomed only to the low-ceiled rooms of the Edinburgh closes, 
stared in amazement at the size of the place and felt abashed. The 
Hawkshaws had made too great a sound in his boyhood's world for him to 
enter their dwelling without a certain tremor of the blood. So absorbed 
was he in his surroundings that it was with a start that he saw the 
master of the house.
</para>
<para>
A man limped forward, gathered the leader of the party in his arms 
and kissed him on both cheeks. 
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will,&quot; he said, &quot; Will, my old comrade ! It's a kind wind that has 
blown you to Calidon this night. I havena clapped eyes on you these 
six year.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The host was a man about middle life, with the shoulders of a bull and a 
massive shaggy head now in considerable disorder from the fact that a 
nightcap had just been removed from it.  His clothes were of a comfortable 
undress, for the tags of his doublet and the points of his breeches were 
undone, and over all he wore an old plaid dressing-gown. He had been 
reading, for a pipe of tobacco marked his place in a folio, and David 
noted that it was Philemon Holland's version of the <ital>Cyropaedia.</ital> His 
eyes were blue and frosty, his cheeks ruddy, his beard an iron grey, 
and his voice as gusty as a hill wind. He limped heavily as he moved.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man Will,&quot; he cried, &quot;it's a whipping up of cripples when you and me 
foregather. The Germany wars have made lameters of the both of us. And 
who are the lads you've brought with you'?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Just like myself, Nick, poor soldiers of Leven's, on our way home 
to Angus.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Angus is it this time?&quot; The host winked and then laughed boisterously.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Angus it is, but their names and designations can wait till we have 
broken our fast. 'Faith, we've as wolfish a hunger as ever you and me 
tholed in Thuringia.  And I've brought in an honest man
that guided us through your bogs and well deserves bite and sup.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Nicholas Hawkshaw peered for a moment at David. &quot;I cannot say I'm acquaint 
with the gentleman, but I've been that long away I've grown out of 
knowledge of my own countryside.  But ye shallna lack for meat and drink, 
for when I got your token I bade Edom stir himself and make' ready. 
There's a good browst of yill, and plenty of French cordial and my 
father's Canary sack. And there's a mutton ham, and the best part of 
a pie -- I wouldna say just what's intil the pie, but at any rate 
there's blackcocks and snipes and leverets, for I had the shooting of 
them. Oh, and there's whatever more Edom, can find in the house of 
Calidon. There's back your ring, Will. When I read the cognisance 
I had a notion that I was about to entertain greater folk -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Than your auld friend Will Rollo and two poor troopers of Leven's. And 
yet we're maybe angels unawares.&quot; He took the ring and handed it to 
the groom, who with David stood a little back from the others, while 
Nicholas Hawkshaw's eyes widened in a momentary surprise.
</para>
<para>
'An ancient serving-man and a barefoot maid brought in the materials 
for supper, and the two troopers fell on the viands like famished crows. 
The groom ate little and drank less; though he was the slightest in 
build of the three travellers he seemed the most hardened to the 
business. The lame man, who was called Will Rollo, was presently 
satisfied, and deep in reminiscences with his host, but the other 
required greater sustenance for his long wiry body and soon reduced 
the pie to a fragment. He pressed morsels upon the groom -- a wing 
of grouse, a giblet of hare -- but the latter smiled and waved the 
food away. A friendly service, Leven's, David thought, where a 
servant was thus tenderly considered.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yon were the brave days, when you and me served as ensigns of 
Meldrum's in the <ital>Corpus Evangelicorum.</ital> And yon was the lad to follow, 
for there never was the marrow of the great Gustavus for putting 
smeddum  into  troops  that  had  as many tongues and creeds as the 
Tower of Babel. But you and me were ower late on the scene. We never 
saw Breitenfeld -- just the calamitous day of Lutzen, and the blacker 
day of Nordlingen where Bernhard led us like sheep to the slaughter. 
That was the end of campaigning for you, Will. I mind leaving you on 
the ground for dead and kissing your cheek, the while I was near 
my own end with a musketoon ball in my ribs. Then I heard you were 
still in life and back in Scotland, but I was off with auld Wrangel 
to Pomerania and had to keep my mind on my own affairs.&quot;
</para>
<para>
So the talk went on, memories of leaguers and forced marches and pitched 
battles, punctuated with the names of Leslies and Hamiltons and Kerrs 
and Lumsdens and a hundred Scots mercenaries --&quot; I got my quietus a year 
sync serving with Torsteusson and his Swedes -- a pitiable small affair 
in Saxonia, where I had the misfortune to meet a round shot on the 
ricochet which cracked, my shin-bone and has set me hirpling for the 
rest of my days. My Colonel was Sandy Leslie, a brother of Leslie of 
Balquhain,, him that stuck Wallenstein at Eger, but a man of honester 
disposition and a good Protestant. He bade me go home, for I would 
never again be worth a soldier's hire, and faith! when the chirurgeon 
had finished with my leg I was of the same opinion. -- So home you find 
me, Will, roosting in the cauld rickle of stones that was my forbears', 
while rumours of war blow like an east wind up the glens. I'm 
waiting for your news. I hear word that Davie Leslie . . . &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Our news can wait, Nick. We've a gentleman here to whose ears this 
babble of war must sound outlandish.&quot; It seemed to David that some 
secret intelligence passed between the two and that a foot of one was 
pressed heavily on the other's toes. 
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am a man of peace,&quot; David said, for the talk had stirred his fancy, 
&quot;but I too have word of a glorious victory in England won by the Covenant 
armies. If you have come straight from the south you can tell me more.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There was a victory beyond doubt,&quot; said the tall man with the squint, 
&quot;and that is why we of Leven's are permitted to go home. We have 
gotten our pay, whilk is an uncommon happening for the poor 
soldier in this land.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have heard,&quot; said David, &quot;that the ranks of the Army of the 
Covenant fought for higher matters than filthy lucre.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;For what, belike?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;For the purity of their faith and the Crown honours of Christ.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The other whistled gently through his teeth.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No doubt. No doubt. There's a braw sough of the Gospel in Leven's 
ranks. But we must consider the loaves and fishes, good sir, as well 
as the preaching of the Word. Man canna live by bread alone, but he 
assuredly canna live without it, and to fill his belly he wants more 
than preaching. Lucre's none so filthy if it be honestly earned, 
and goes to keep a roof over the wife and bairns. I have served in many 
lands with a kennin' o' queer folk and, believe me, sir, the first 
thing a soldier thinks of is just his pay.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But he cannot fight unless he has a cause to fight for.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He'll make a very good shape at it if he has been learned his business 
by a heavy-handed sergeant. I have seen the riddlings of Europe stick 
fast as rocks before Wallenstein's horse, because they had been taught 
their trade and feared death less than their Colonel's tongue. And 
I have seen the flower of gentrice, proud as Lucifer and gallant as 
lions, and every one with a noble word on his lips, break like rotten 
twigs at the first musket volley. It's discipline that's the last 
word in war.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But if the discipline be there, will not a conviction of the right 
of his cause make a better soldier?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have spoken a true word, and there's a man in England this day 
that knows it. That is what Cromwell has done.  He has built up a body 
of horse that stand like an iron wall and move like a -river in spate. 
They have the discipline of Gustavus's Swedes, and the fires of Hell 
in their hearts. I tell you, there is nothing in this land that can 
stand against them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have no love for sectaries,&quot; said David. &quot;But cannot our Scots 
do likewise, with the Covenant to nerve them?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The other shrugged his shoulders.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Covenant's but sour kail to the soldier. Davie Leslie has hammered 
his men into a wise-like army, because he learned his trade from Gustavus.  
But think you our bannock-fed foot-sentinels care a do it for the black 
gowns at Westminster? A man will fight for his King and for his country 
and for liberty to worship God in his own way. But, unless he has a 
crack in his head, he will not fight for a fine point of Church 
government.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David was becoming ill at ease. He felt that it was his duty to 
testify, or otherwise he would be guilty of the sin of Meroz, the 
sin of apathy when his faith was challenged. But he was far from clear 
as to the exact nature of his faith. There was no blasphemy in questioning 
whether the Covenant were truly in the hearts of the people.  Had not 
the minister of Cauldshaw that very afternoon expressed the same doubt?
</para>
<para>
Nicholas Hawkshaw was peering at him intently.
</para>
<para>
&quot; I should ken you, friend, for they tell me you belong to this 
countryside. And your face sticks in my memory, but I canna put 
a name to it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;They call me David Sempill. I am the new-ordained minister of Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Nicholas cried out. &quot;Auld Wat o' the Roodfoot's grandson. I heard of 
your coming, sir, and indeed I'm your chief heritor.  I'll have your 
hand on that.  Man, I kenned your gudesire well, and many a pouchful 
of groats I had from him when I was a laddie. You're back among kenned 
folk, Mr Sempill, and I wish you a long life in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The troopers did not seem to share their host's geniality. Quick glances 
passed between them, and the tall man shifted his seat so that he 
came between David and the groom. This latter had taken no part in the 
conversation, indeed he had not spoken a word, but after his meal was 
finished had sat with his head on his breast as if sunk in meditation. 
Now he raised his eyes to David, and it was he who spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am not less loyal to the Kirk of Scotland than you, Mr Sempill. 
You are a placed minister, and I am a humble elder of that kirk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In what parish?&quot; David asked eagerly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;In my native parish benorth of Forth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man's dress and station were forgotten by David when he looked at 
his face. Now that he saw clearly in the candle-light it was not the 
face of a common groom. Every feature spoke of race; the firm mouth 
of command, the brooding grey eyes of thought. The voice was sweet 
and musical, and the man's whole air had a gentle but imperious 
courtesy.
</para>
<para>
The movement of the tall trooper, while it had separated David from the 
groom, had brought the latter full into the view of Nicholas Hawkshaw. 
Now a strange thing happened. The host, after a long stare, during 
which amazement and recognition woke in his eyes, half rose from his 
seat and seemed on the verge of speaking. His gaze was fixed on the 
groom, and David read in it something at once deferential and exulting. 
Then the toe of the lame man's boot came down on his shin, and the lame 
man's hand was laid on his arm. The lame man too said something in a 
tongue which David could not understand. Nicholas subsided in his chair, 
but his face remained both puzzled and excited.
</para>
<para>
The groom spoke again.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are a scholar, and you are young, and you are full of the ardour 
of your calling. This parish is fortunate in its minister, and I would 
that all Scotland were as happily served. What is it that you and I 
seek alike?  A pure doctrine, and a liberated Kirk? Is there no more?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I seek above all things to bring men and women to God's mercy-seat.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And I say Amen. That is more than any disputation about the forms of 
Presbytery. But you seek also, or I am mightily mistook in you, the 
freedom and well-being of this land of ours -- that our Israel may have 
peace and prosperity in her borders.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;If the first be won, all the rest will be added unto us.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doubtless.  But only if the first be truly won -- if the Kirk attend to 
the work of salvation and does not expend her toil in barren fields.  
Her sovereign must be King Jesus. Take heed that instead it be not 
King Covenant.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The words recalled to David Mr Fordyce's doubts, which had been so 
scornfully repelled by the ministers of Kirk Aller and Bold.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Does it lie in the mouth of a minister or an elder of the Kirk to 
cavil at the Kirk's doings?&quot; he asked, but without conviction in 
his tone.
</para>
<para>
The other smiled.  &quot;You give due loyalty, as the Scripture enjoins, 
to the King, Mr Sempill?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am faithful to his Majesty so long as his Majesty is faithful to 
law and religion.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Even so.  It is my own creed. The King must respect the limits of 
his prerogative -- it is the condition on which he rules in a free 
land. My loyalty to the Kirk is in the same case. I am loyal when she 
fulfill those duties which God has laid upon her -- that duty above 
all of bringing mortal man to God. If she forget those duties and 
meddle arrogantly with civil matters that do not concern her, then 
I take leave to oppose her, as in a like case I would oppose his 
Majesty. For by such perversities both King and Kirk become tyrants, 
and tyranny is not to be endured by men who are called into the 
liberty of Christ.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Or by Scots,&quot; added the tall trooper.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have no clearness on the point,&quot; said David after a pause.  &quot;I have 
not thought deeply on these matters, for I am but new to the ministry 
and my youth was filled with profane study.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nevertheless, such study is a good foundation for a wise theology.  I 
judge that you are a ripe Latinist -- maybe also a Grecian.  You have 
read your Aristotle? You are familiar with the history of the ancient 
world, which illumines all later ages? I would point my arguments 
from that armoury.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I cannot grant that the doings of ancient heathendom give any rule 
for a Christian state.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But, sir, the business of government is always the same. We have our 
Lord's warning that there are the things of Caesar and the things of 
God. The Roman was the great master of the arts of government, and he 
did not seek throughout his empire to make a single religion.  He was 
content to give it the peace of his law, and let each people go its 
own way in matters of worship.  It was in that tolerant world which 
he created that our Christian faith found its opportunity.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Doubtless God so moved the Roman mind for His own purpose.  But I 
join issue on your application. The Church of Christ is now in being, 
and the faith of Christ is the foundation of a Christian state.  
Civil law is an offence against God unless it be also Christian.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The young man smiled.  &quot;I do not deny it. This realm of ours is 
professedly a Christian realm -- I would it were more truly so.  
But that does not exempt it from obedience to those laws of government 
without which no realm, Christian or pagan, may endure.  If a man is 
so ill a smith that he cannot shoe my horse, I will be none the 
better served because he is a good Christian.  If a land be ill 
governed, the disaster will be not the less great because the governors 
are men of God.  If his Majesty -- to take a pertinent example-override 
the law to the people's detriment, that tyranny will be not the 
less grievous because his Majesty believes in his heart that he 
is performing a duty towards the Almighty.  Honest intention will 
not cure faulty practice, and the fool is the fool whether he be 
unbeliever or professor.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David shook his head. &quot;Where does your argument tend? I fear to schism.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not so.  I am an orthodox son of the Kirk, a loyal servant of his 
Majesty, and a passionate Scot.  Here, my friend, is my simple 
confession. There is but one master in the land and its name is Law -- 
which is in itself a creation of a free people under the inspiration 
of the Almighty.  That law may be changed by the people's will, but 
till it be so changed it. is to be revered and obeyed.  It has ordained 
the King's prerogative, the rights of the subject, and the rights and 
duties of the Kirk.  The state is like the body, whose health is only 
to be maintained by a just proportion among its members. If a man's 
belly be his god his limbs will suffer, if he use only his legs 
his arms will dwindle.  If therefore the King should intrude upon 
the subject's rights, or the subject whittle at the King's prerogative, 
or the Kirk set herself above the Crown, there will be a sick state 
and an ailing people.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Nicholas Hawkshaw had been listening intently with a puzzled air, his 
eyes fixed on the groom's face, but the two troopers seemed ill at ease.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man, James,&quot; said the tall man, &quot;you've mistook your calling.  You 
should have been a regent in the college of St. Andrew's, and hammered 
sense into the thick heads of the bejaunts.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Rollo, the lame man, shifted his seat and seemed inclined to turn 
the conversation.
</para>
<para>
&quot; Patience, Mark&quot; said the groom.  &quot;It's not often a poor soldier of 
Leven's gets a chance of a crack with a like-minded friend.  For I'm 
certain that Mr Sempill is very near my way of thinking.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not quarrel with your premises,&quot; said David, &quot;but I'm not clear 
about the conclusion.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's writ large in this land to-day.  There are those that would make 
the King a puppet and put all authority in parliaments, and there are 
those who would make the Kirk like Calvin's at Geneva, a ruler over 
both civil and religious matters.  I say that both ways lie madness 
and grief.  If you upset the just proportion of the law you will gain 
not liberty but confusion. You are a scholar, Mr Sempill, and have 
read the histories of Thucydides? Let me counsel you to read them 
again and consider the moral.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What side are you on?&quot; David asked abruptly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am on the side of the free people of Scotland. And you by your vows 
are on the same side, for your concern is to feed the flock of God 
which is among us.  Think you, sir, if you depress the balance against 
the King, that theteby you will win more for the people? Nay, nay, 
what is lost to the prerogative will go, not to the people, but to 
those who prey on them. You will have that anarchy which gives his 
chance to the spoiler, and out of anarchy will come some day a man 
of violence who will tyrannically make order again. It is the way 
of the world, my friend.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are you for 'the Covenant?&quot;
</para>
<para>
At the question the others started.  &quot;Enough of politics,&quot; cried 
Rollo.  &quot;These are no matters to debate among weary folk.&quot;  But 
the groom raised his hand and they were silent.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am for the Covenant.  Six years back I drew sword for it, and I 
did not sheathe that sword till we had established the liberties of 
this land. That was indeed a Covenant of Grace.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is another and a later. What say you of that?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I say of that other that it is a Covenant of Works in which I have 
no part, nor any true lover of the Kirk.  It is a stepping of the Kirk 
beyond the bounds prescribed by the law of God and the law of man, and 
it will mean a weakening of the Kirk in its proper duties.  And that 
I need not tell you, as a minister of Christ, will be the starvation 
and oppression of Christ's simple folk. <ital>Quicquid delirant reges, 
plectuntur Achivi.</ital>  Is it not more pleasing to God that His ministers 
should comfort the sick and the widow and the fatherless and guide 
souls to Heaven than that they should scrabble for civil pre-eminence?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Into David's mind came two visions-that of the complacent ministers 
of Kirk Aller and Bold as they had discoursed at meat, and that of 
the old herd at the Greenshiel sitting by his dead wife.  The pictures 
belonged to different worlds, and at the moment he felt that these 
worlds were eternally apart.  He had the disquieting thought that 
the one had only the husks of faith and the other the grain. Dimly 
he heard the voice of the groom.  &quot; I will give you a text, Mr Sempill.  
'The vineyard of the Lord of hosts is the house of Israel, and 
the men of Judah His pleasant plant; and He looked for judgment, 
but behold oppression; for righteousness, but behold a cry.'
</para>
<para>
He scarcely realised that the others had sprung to their feet, and 
it was only when Nicholas Hawkshaw exclaimed that he turned his head.
</para>
<para>
A girl stood before them, the girl who had opened the door, but whose 
face he had scarcely seen at the time in the poor light.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Katrine, my dear, you've been long of coming.&quot; It was Nicholas who 
spoke.  &quot;I thought you had slipped off to your bed.  This is my sister's 
child, sirs, who keeps me company in this auld barrack -- Robert Yester's 
daughter, him that fell with Monro in the year 'thirty-four.  You see 
three gentlemen-troopers of Leyen's, my dear, and Mr Sempill, the 
new minister of Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The gitl was dressed in a gown of blue velvet, the skirts of which 
were drawn back in front to show an embroidered petticoat of stiff 
yellow satin. It was cut low at the neck and shoulders, and round 
the top ran a broad edging of fine lace.  Her dark hair was caught 
up in a knot behind, but allowed to fall in curls on each side of 
her face.  That face, to David's startled eyes, was like none that 
he had ever seen before, certainly like none of the Edinburgh burger 
girls whom he had observed in their finery on the Saturday causeway.  
It was small and delicately featured, the cheeks flushed with youth 
and health, the eyes dark, brilliant, and mirthful.
</para>
<para>
At another time he would have been shocked at her dress, for the fashion 
of a low bodice had not spread much beyond the Court, but now he did 
not take note of what she wore.  He was gazing moonstruck upon a 
revelation.
</para>
<para>
She smiled on him -- she smiled on them all. She curtsied lightly to 
her uncle, to Rollo, and to the dark man.  But she did not curtsy to 
the minister. For suddenly, as she looked at the groom her composure 
deserted her.  Her mouth moved as if she would have spoken, and then 
she checked herself, for David saw that the groom had put his finger 
to his lips.  Instead she curtsied almost to the ground, a reverence 
far more deep than she had accorded to the others, and when he gave 
her his hand she bent her head as if her impulse was to kiss it.
</para>
<para>
All this David saw with a confused vision.  He had scarcely spoken ten 
words in his life to a woman outside his own kin, and this bright 
apparition loosened his knees with nervousness.  He stammered his 
farewells.  He had already outstayed the bounds of decency, and he 
had a long ride home -- he wished his friends a safe conclusion to 
their journey -- in the course of his pastoral visitations he would 
have the chance of coming again to Calidon. &quot;'Deed, sir, and you'll 
make sure of that,&quot; said the hospitable Nicholas.  &quot;There's aye a 
bite and a sup at Calidon for the minister of Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He bowed to the girl, and she looked at him for the first time, a 
quizzical appraising look, and gave him a fleeting smile.  Five 
minutes later he was on his horse and fording Rood.
</para>
<para>
He took the long road by the back of the Hill of Deer, riding in 
bright moonshine up the benty slopes and past the hazel thickets.  
His mind was in a noble confusion, for on this, his first day in 
his parish, experiences had thronged on him too thick and fast.  
Out of the welter two faces stood clear, the groom's and the girl's. . . .  
He remembered the talk, and his conscience pricked him.  Had he 
been faithful to his vows? Had he been guilty of the sin of Meroz?  
Had he listened to railing accusations 'and been silent? . . .  
He did not know -- in truth he did not care-for the sum of his 
recollection was not of an argument but of a person. The face of 
the young man had been more than his words, for it had been the 
face of a comrade, and an intimate friendliness had looked out 
of his eyes. He longed to see him again, to be with him, to follow 
him, to serve him -- but he did not know his name, and they would 
doubtless never meet again.  David was very young, and could have 
wept at the thought.
</para>
<para>
And the girl . . . ? The sight of her had been the coping-stone to a 
night of marvels.  She was not like the groom -- he had been glad to flee 
from her company, for she had no part in his world. But a marvel beyond 
doubt! The recollection of her -made him a poet, and as he picked his 
way over the hill he was quoting to himself the lines in Homer where 
the old men of Troy see Helen approaching and wonder at her beauty. . . . 
(Greek script) -- how did it go?  &quot;Small wonder that the Trojans and 
the mailed Greeks should endure pain through many years for such a 
woman.  In face she is strangely like to some immortal.&quot;
</para>
<para>
And then he felt compunction, for he remembered the worn face of the 
dead woman at the Greenshiel.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter IV</chapnum>
<title>The Faithful Servant</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>FOR</emph> two days the minister of Woodilee was a man unbalanced and 
distraught.  He sat at his books without concentration, and he 
wandered on the hills without delight, while Isobel's face puckered 
in dismay as she removed his scarcely tasted meals. It was hot 
thundery weather, with storms that never broke in rain grumbling 
among the glens, and to this she set down his indisposition to eat.  
But David's trouble was not of the body.  He had thought himself 
the mailed servant of God, single in purpose, armed securely against 
the world, and lo! in a single night he had been the sport of profane 
fancies and had rejoiced in vanities.
</para>
<para>
The girl he scarcely thought of -- she had scared rather than enthralled 
him.  But the Wood of Melanudrigill lay heavy on his conscience. Where 
was his Christian fortitude if a black forest at night could set him 
shivering like a lost child? David had all his life kept a tight hand 
on his courage; if he dreaded a thing, that was good reason why he should 
go out of his road to face it. His instinct was to return alone to 
Melanudrigill in the dark, penetrate its deepest recesses, and give the 
lie to its enchantments. . . .  But a notion which he could not combat 
restrained him.  That was what the Wood wanted, to draw him back to it 
through curiosity or fear. If he yielded to his impulse he would be 
acknowledging its power. It was the part of a minister of God to deny 
at the outset that the place was more than a common wilderness of rock
and tree, to curb his fancies as things too vain for a grown man's 
idlest thought.
</para>
<para>
On this point he fixed his resolution and found some comfort. But the 
memory of Calidon and the troopers and the groom's words remained to 
trouble him. Had he not borne himself in their company as a Laodicean, 
assenting when he should have testified?. . . He went over every detail 
of the talk, for it stuck firmly in his mind. They had decried the Solemn 
League and Covenant in the name of the Kirk, and he had not denounced 
them. . . .  And yet they had spoken as Christian men and loyal sons of 
that Kirk. . . .  What meant, too, the groom's disquisition on law and 
government. David found the argument hard to gainsay -- it presented a 
doctrine of the state which commended itself to his reason. Yet it was 
in flat contradiction of the declared view of that Kirk which he was 
sworn to serve, and what then became of his ordination vows? . . . But 
was it contrary to the teaching of the Word and the spirit of his faith? 
He searched his mind on this point and found that he had no clearness.
</para>
<para>
His duty, it seemed, was to go to some father-in-God, like the minister 
of Kirk Aller, and lay his doubts before him. But he found that course
possible. The pale fleshy face of Mr Muirhead rose before him, as 
light-giving as a peat-stack; he heard his complacent tones, saw the 
bland conceit in his ruminant eyes. Nor would he fare better with the 
militancy of his brother of Bold, who classed all mankind as Amalekites, 
save the chosen few who wore his own phylacteries. Mr Fordyce might 
give him comfort, and he was on the point many times of saddling his 
horse and riding to the manse of Cauldshaw. . . .  But each time 
he found it impossible, and when he asked himself the cause he was 
amazed at the answer. Loyalty forbade him-loyalty to the young man, 
habited as a groom, who had spoken both as counsellor and comrade. That 
was the enduring spell of that strange night. David as a youth in 
Edinburgh had had few familiar friends, and none that could be called 
intimate. For the first time he had met one from whom had gone forth 
an influence that melted his heart.  He recalled with a kind of aching 
affection the gentle, commanding courtesy, the kindly smile, the 
masterful and yet wistful grey eyes.  &quot;I wonder,&quot; he thought, &quot;if I 
was not meant to be a soldier. For I could follow yon man most joyfully 
to the can-non's mouth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
On the third day peace returned to him, when he buried Marion of the 
Greenshiel. The parish coffin was not used, as was the custom for poor 
folk, since the farmer of Reiverslaw, Richie's master, paid the cost 
of a private one, and himself attended the &quot;chesting&quot; the night before.  
On the day David walked the seven miles to the cottage, where Richie 
had set out a poor entertainment of ale and oatcakes for the mourners. 
It was not the fashion for the minister to pray at the house or at the 
grave, as savouring of Popish prayers for the dead, nor was it the 
custom for a widower to attend the funeral; but David took his own way, 
and prayed with the husband, the wailing women, and the half-dozen 
shepherds who had assembled for the last rites. The light coffin was 
carried by four young men, and David walked with them all the way to 
Woodilee. The farmer of Reiverslaw joined them at a turn of the road -- 
his name was Andrew Shillinglaw, a morose dark man not over-well 
spoken of in the parish -- and he and the minister finished the journey 
side by side. The bellman, Nehemiah Robb, who was also the gravedigger 
and the beadle, met them at the entrance to the kirkton, and with him 
a crowd of villagers. Freceded by the jangling of Robb's bell, the 
procession reached the shallow grave, the women remaining at the 
kirkyard gate. The coffin was lowered, the earth shovelled down, and 
the thing in five minutes was over. There was no &quot;dredgy&quot; [*] at 
the poor house of the Greenshiel to draw the mourners back upon the 
seven moorland miles. The men adjourned to Lucky Weir's, the kirk bell 
was restored to its tree, a woman or two sobbed, and the last of Marion 
Smail was a thin stream of figures vanishing in the haze of evening, 
one repeating to the other in funereal voices that &quot;puir Mirren 
had got wed awa'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Yet the occasion, austere and bare as poverty could make it, woke in 
David a inood of tender-ness and peace. The lowering clouds had gone 
from the sky, all morning it had rained, and the after-noon had had a 
soft autumn freshness.  He had prayed with Richie, but his prayers had 
been also for himself, and as he walked behind the coffin on the path 
by the back of the Hill of Deer his petition seemed to have been answered.  
He had an assurance of his vocation. The crowd at the kirk-yard, those 
toil-worn folk whose immortal souls had been given into his charge, moved 
him to a strange exultation. He saw his duty cleared from all doubts, 
and there must have been that in his face which told of his thoughts, 
for men greeted him and then passed on, as if unwilling to break in on 
his preoccupation. Only Reiverslaw, who was on his way to Lucky Weir''s 
whence he would depart drunk in the small hours, was obtuse in his 
perceptions. He took the minister's hand and shook it as he would 
a drover's at a fair, seemed anxious to speak, found no words, 
and left with a grunted farewell.
</para>
<footnote>
* funeral feast.
</footnote>
<para>
It was a fine, long-drawn-out back-end, the best that had been known 
for twenty years. All September the sun shone like June, and it was 
well into October before the morning frosts began, and the third week 
of November before the snow came. The little crops-chiefly grey oats 
and barley, with an occasional rig of peas and flax-were well ripened 
and quickly reaped. The nettie-wives were busy all day in the fields, 
and the barefoot children made the leading in of the harvest a holiday, 
with straw whistles in their mouths and fantastic straw badges on their 
clothing. Then came the threshing with jointed flails, and the winnowing 
on barn roofs when the first east winds blew.  There were no gleaners 
in the empty stubbles, for it was held a pious duty to leave something 
behind for the fowls of the air. Presently the scanty fruits of the 
earth were under cover, the bog hay in dwarfish ricks, the unthreshed 
oats and bear in the barns, the grain in the girnels, and soon the 
wheel of the Woodilee mill was clacking merrily to grind the winter's 
meal. In that parish the burden of the laird lay light. Nicholas Hawkshaw 
asked no more than his modest rental in kind, and did not exact his 
due in labour, but for a week the road by the back of the Hill of Deer 
saw a procession of horses carrying the &quot;kain&quot; meal to the Calidon 
granary. As the minister watched the sight one day, Ephraim Caird,
the Chasehope tenant, stood beside him, looking gloomily at his own 
beasts returning. &quot;That's the way our puir crops are guided,&quot; he said. 
&quot;As the auld folk used to say, 'Ane part to saw, ane part to gnaw, and 
ane to pay the laird witha'.'&quot; His eyes showed that he had no bye 
for Calidon.
</para>
<para>
Hallowmass that year was a cheerful season. The elders shook their 
heads at the Hallowe'en junketings, and the severe Chasehope was 
strong in his condemnation. But on the night of Hallowe'en, as David 
took a walk in the bright moonlight and saw the lights in the cottages 
and heard laughter and a jigging of fiddles, he did not find it in 
his heart to condemn the ancient fashions. Nor apparently did Chasehope 
himself, for David was much mistaken if it was not Ephraim's great 
shoulders and fiery head that he saw among the cabbage-stalks in Nance 
Kello's garden. He had been to Hallowe'en frolics himself in past days 
when he stayed with his cousin at Newbiggin, but it seemed to him that 
here in Woodilee there was something oppressed and furtive in the 
merriment. There was a secrecy about each lit dwelling, and no sign 
of young lads and lasses laughing on the roads. He noticed, too, that 
for the next few days many of the people had a look of profound 
weariness-pale faces, tired eyes, stealthy glances -- as if behind the 
apparent decorum there had been revels that exhausted soul and body.
</para>
<para>
With the reaping of the harvest the ill-conditioned cattle were brought 
from the hills to the stubbles, and soon turned both outfield and 
infield into a miry wilderness. David, whose knowledge of farming 
was derived chiefly from the Georgics, had yet an eye in his head 
and a store of common sense, and he puzzled at the methods. The land 
at its best was ill-drained, and the trampling of beasts made a 
thousand hollows which would be puddles at the first rains and would 
further sour the rank soil. But when he spoke on the matter to the 
farmer of Mirehope, he was answered scornfully that that had been 
the &quot;auld way of the land,&quot; and that those who were proud in their 
own conceit and had tried new-fangled methods -- he had heard word 
of such in the West country-could not get two bolls from an acre 
where he had four. &quot;And Mirehope's but wersh [*] land, sir, and not 
to be named wi' the Clyde howms.&quot;
</para>
<para>
When the November snows came all live stock was gathered into the 
farm-towns. The cattle were penned in yards with thatched shelters, 
and soon turned them into seas of mud. The milking cows were in the 
byre; the sheep in paddocks nearby: the draught-oxen and the horses 
in miserable stables of mud and heather. It was thebeginning of the 
winter hibernation, and the chief work of the farms was the feeding 
of the stock on their scanty winter rations.  The hay-coarse bog 
grasses with little nutriment in them-went mainly to the sheep; 
horses and cattle had for fodder straw and messes of boiled chaff; 
while Crummie in the byre was sometimes regaled with the debris of 
the kailyard and the oddments left from the family meals.  Winter 
each year was both for beast and man a struggle with famine, and 
each was rationed like the people of a besieged city. But if food 
was scarce at the best, Woodilee did not want for fuel. It had been 
a good year for peats, for they had ripened well on the hills, and 
the open autumn had made them easy to carry. Each cottage had its ample 
peat-stack, and when harvest was over there had been also a great 
gathering of windfalls from the woods, so that by every door stood 
a pile of kindlings.
</para>
<footnote>
* sour.
</footnote>
<para>
Melanudrigill in the bright October days had lost its menace for 
David. He had no occasion to visit it by night, but more than once 
he rode through it by day on his pastoral visitations to Fennan or 
the Rood valley, and once in a flaming sunset he returned that way 
from Kirk Aller. The bracken was golden in decay, and the yellowing 
birches, the russet thorns, and the occasional scarlet of rowans made 
the sombre place almost cheerful. In his walks on the hill the great 
forest below him seemed to have grown thin and open, no longer a vast 
enveloping cloak, but a kindly covering for the ribs of earth.  
Some potency had gone from it with the summer, as if the tides of a 
fierce life had sunk back into the ground again. He had seen deer in 
the glades, and they looked innocent things. . . But he noticed as 
curious that none of the villagers in their quest for wood penetrated 
far into it, and that on its fringes they only gathered the windfalls. 
Up at the back of the Hill of Deer and in the Rood glen men were busy 
all day cutting birch and hazel billets, but no axe was laid to any 
tree in the Black Wood.
</para>
<para>
A week before Yule came the great snow.  It began with a thin cold fog 
which muffled every fold of the hills.  &quot;Rouk's [*] snaw's wraith,&quot; said 
the parish, and saw to its fuel-stacks and looked gloomily at its 
shivering beasts. The thick weather lasted for three days and three 
nights, weather so cold that it was pain to draw breath, and old folk at
night in their box beds could not get warmth, and the Woodilee burn 
was frozen hard even in the linns. It was noted as a bad omen that 
deer from Melanudrigill were seen in the kirkton, and that at dawn 
when the Mirehope shepherd went out to his sheep he found half-frozen 
blue hares crouching among the flocks. On the fourth morning the snow 
began, and fell for three days in heavy flakes, so that it lay feet 
deep on the roads and fields. Then the wind rose and for six furious 
hours a blizzard raged, so that the day was like night, and few dared 
stir from their doors. David, setting out to visit Amos Ritchie's wife, 
who was sick of a congestion, took two hours over a quarter of mile of 
road, wandering through many kitchen middens, and had to postpone his 
return till the wind abated in the evening, while Isobel in the manse 
was demented with anxiety. The consequence was that the snow was swept 
bare from the knowes, but piled into twelve-foot drifts in the hollows. 
It was an ill time for the sheep in the paddocks, which were often one 
giant drift, where the presence of the flock could only be detected 
by the yellowish steaming snow. Chasehope lost a score of ewes, 
Mirehope half as many, and Nether Pennan, where the drifts were deep, 
the best part of his flock. To David it seemed that the farmers' 
ways were a tempting of Providence.  Had the sheep been left on the 
hill they would have crowded in the snow to the bare places; here 
in the confined paddocks they were caught in a trap. Moreover, on 
the hill in open winter weather there was a better living to be picked 
up than that afforded by the narrow rations of sour bog hay. But when 
he spoke thus his hearers plainly thought him mad. Sheep would never 
face a winter on the hills -- besides, the present practice was the 
&quot;auld way.&quot; 
</para>
<footnote>
* fog.
</footnote>
<para>
The snow lay till the New Year was a week old, and when 
the thaw came and the roads ran in icy streams, David took to his bed 
for two days in utter exhaustion. All through the storm he had been 
on his legs, for there were sick folk and old folk in Woodilee who 
would perish miserably if left alone. The farm-towns could look after 
themselves, but in the scattered cottages of the kirkton there was 
no one to take command, and neighbourliness languished when each 
household was preoccupied with its own cares. Peter Pennecuik, a 
ruling elder, whose gift of prayer had been commended by Mr Muirhead, 
had lost a tup and had his byre roof crushed in by the drift, so 
he became a fatalist, holding that the Lord had prepared a visitation 
which it would be impiety to resist, and sat lugubriously by his 
fireside. David's fingers. itched for his ears. From Amos Ritchie 
the blacksmith he got better assistance.  Amos was a shaggy 
black-bearded man of thirty-five, a great fiddler and a mighty 
putter of the stone, whose godliness might have been suspect but 
for his behaviour in the Bishops' War.  His wife was at death's 
door all through the storm, but he nevertheless constituted himself 
the minister's first lieutenant and wrought valiantly in the work 
of relief. There were old women too chilled and frail to kindle 
their fires in the morning and melt snow for water; there were 
households so ill provided that they existed largely on borrowed 
food; there were cots where the weather had broken roof or wall. 
Isobel in the manse kitchen was a busy woman and her girdle was 
never off the fire. David had looked forward to the winter 
snows as a season of peace, when he could sit indoors with his 
books; instead he found himself on his feet for fourteen hours out 
of the twenty-four, his hands and face chapped like a ploughman's, 
and so weary at night that he fell off his chair with sleep while 
Isobel fetched his supper.
</para>
<para>
Yet it was the storm which was David's true ordination to his duties, 
for it brought him close to his people, not in high sacramental things 
like death, but in their daily wrestling for life.  He might visit 
their houses and catechise their families, but these were formal 
occasions, with all on their best behaviour, whereas in the intimate 
business of charity he saw them as they were.
</para>
<para>
The new minister was young and he was ardent, and his duties were 
still an adventure.  His Sabbath sermons were diligently meditated.  
For his morning lecture he took the book of the prophet Amos, which, 
as the work of a herdsman, seemed fitting for a country parish. His 
two weekly discourses dealt laboriously with the fourfold state of 
man -- his early state of innocence, his condition after the Fall, 
his state under grace, his condition in eternity.  That winter 
David did not get beyond the state of innocence, and in discoursing 
on it he exhausted his ingenuity in piecing texts together from 
the Scriptures, and in such illustrations as he believed would 
awaken his hearers' minds.  Profane learning openly used would 
have been resented, but he contrived to bring in much that did 
not belong to the divinity schools, and he escaped criticism, it 
may be, because his Kirk Session did not understand him.  His 
elders were noted theologians, and what was strange to them, 
if it was weightily phrased, they took for theological profundity.
</para>
<para>
At ten o'clock each Sabbath morning Robb the beadle tinkled the 
first bell; at the second the congregation moved into the kirk, 
and Peter Pennecuik, who acted as precentor, led the opening psalm; 
reading each line before it was sung. When Robb jerked the third 
bell, David entered the pulpit and began with prayer. At one o'clock 
the people dispersed, those who came from a distance to Lucky Weir's 
ale-house; and at two fell the second service, which concluded at 
four with the coming of the dark. The kirk with its earthen floor 
was cold as a charnel-house, and the dimness of the light tried 
even David's young eyes. The people sat shivering on their little 
stools, each with the frozen decorum and strained attention which 
was their Sabbath ritual. To the minister it seemed often as if he 
were speaking to sheeted tombstones, he felt as if his hearers were 
at an infinite distance from him, and only on rare occasions, when 
some shining text of Scripture moved his soul and he spoke simply 
and with emotion, did he feel any contact with his flock.
</para>
<para>
But his sermons were approved.  Peter Pennecuik gave it as his verdict 
that he was a &quot;deep&quot; preacher and sound in the fundamentals.  Others, 
remembering the thrill that sometimes came into his voice, called 
him an &quot;affectionate&quot; preacher, and credited him with &quot;unction.&quot; But 
there were many that longed for stronger fare, something more marrowy 
and awful, pictures of the hell of torment which awaited those who 
were not of the Elect. He had the &quot;sough,&quot; no doubt, but it was a 
gentle west wind, and not the stern Euroclydon which should call 
sinners to repentance.  Their minister was a man of God, but he was 
young; years might add weight to him and give him the thunders 
of Sinai.
</para>
<para>
To David the Sabbath services were the least of his duties. He had 
come to Woodilee with his heart full of the mighty books which he 
would write in the solitude of his upper chamber. The chief was that 
work on the prophet Isaiah which should be for all time a repository 
of sacred learning, so that Sempill on Isaiah would be quoted 
reverently like Luther on the Galatians or Calvin on the Romans. 
In the autumn evenings he had sketched the lines of his masterpiece, 
and before the great snow he had embarked on its prolegomena. But 
the storm made a breach in his studies.  He felt himself called to 
more urgent duties, for he was a pastor of souls before he was a 
scholar. His visitations and catechisings among his flock were his 
chief care, and he began to win a name for diligence. On nights when 
even a shepherd would have kept the ingle side, David would arrive 
at a moorland cottage, and many a time Isobel had to welcome in 
the small hours a dripping or frozen master, thaw him by her kitchen 
fire, and feed him with hot ale and bannocks, while he recounted 
his adventures. He was strong and buoyant and he loved the life, 
which seemed to him to have the discipline of a soldier. His face 
high-coloured by weather, his cheerful eyes, and his boyish voice 
and laugh were soon popular in the length of the parish. &quot;He is 
a couthy lad,&quot; said the old wives, &quot;and for a man o' God he's terrible 
like a plain body.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Also he took charge of the children. In Woodilee there was no school 
or schoolmaster. There were three hundred communicants, but it was 
doubtful if more than a dozen could read a sentence or write
their name. In the Kirk Session itself there were only three. So 
David started a school, which met thrice a week of a morning in the 
manse kitchen. He sent to Edinburgh for horn-books, and with them 
and his big Bible taught his class their rudiments. These were the 
pleasantest hours of the day for master and children, and weekly 
the gathering grew till there was not a child in the kirkton or 
in the farm-towns of Mirehope and Chasehope that would have missed 
them.  When they arrived blue with cold and often breakfastless, 
Isobel would give each a bowl of broth, and while the lesson 
proceeded she would mend their ragged garments.  Indeed more than 
one child emerged new clad, for the minister's second-best cloak 
and an old pair of breeches were cut up by Isobel -- expostulating 
but not ill-pleased -- for tattered little mortals.
</para>
<para>
David was more than a private almoner. He and his Session had the 
Poor Box to administer, the sole public means of relieving the parish's 
needs. Woodilee was better off than many places, in that it possessed 
a mortification of a thousand pounds Scots, bequeathed fifty years 
earlier by a certain Grizel Hawkshaw for the comfort of the poor. 
Also there was the weekly collection at the kirk services, where 
placks and doits and bodies and a variety of debased coins clinked 
in the plate at the kirk door, and there were the fines levied by 
the Session on evil-doers. In the winter the task of almoner was 
easier, for there were few beggars on the roads, and those that 
crossed the hills came as a rule only to die, when the single 
expense was the use of the parish coffin. Yet the administration 
of the scanty funds was a difficult business, and it led to David's 
first controversies with his Session. Each elder had his own
favourites among the poor, and Chasehope and Mirehope and Nether 
Fennan wrangled over every grant. The minister, still new to the 
place, for the most part held his peace, but now and then, in cases 
which he knew of, he asserted his authority. There was a woman, none 
too well reputed, who lived at Chasehope-foot, with a buxom black-eyed 
daughter, and whose house, though lamentably dirty and ill guided; 
seemed to lack nothing. When he opposed Chasehope's demand that she 
should receive a benefaction as a lone widow, he had a revelation 
of Chasehope's temper. The white face crimsoned, and the greenish 
eyes looked for a moment as ugly as a snarling dog's.  &quot; Worthy 
Mr Macmichael . .&quot; he began, but David cut him short. &quot;These moneys are 
for the relief  of the helpless poor,&quot; he said, &quot;and they are scant enough at 
the best. I should think shame to waste a bodle except on a pitiful 
necessity.  To him or her. that hath shall not be given, while I 
am the minister of this parish.&quot; Chasehope said nothing, and 
presently he mastered his annoyance, but the farmer of Mirehope-Alexander 
Sprot was his name-muttered something in an undertone to his 
neighbour, and there was tension in the air till the laugh of 
the Woodilee miller broke it. This man, one Spotswood, reckoned 
the richest in the parish and the closest, had a jolly laugh which 
belied his reputation. &quot;Mr Sempill's in the right, Chasehope,&quot; 
he cried.  &quot;Jean o' the Chasehopefit can manage fine wi' what her 
gudeman left her. We daurna be lovish wi' ither folks' siller.&quot;  
&quot;I am overruled,&quot; said Chasehope, and spoke no more.
</para>
<para>
Little news came in those days to Woodilee. In the open weather before 
the storm the pack-horses of the carriers came as usual from Edinburgh, 
and the drovers on the road to England brought word of the doings in 
the capital. Johnnie Dow, the pack-man, went his rounds till the snow 
stopped him, but in January when the weather cleared he broke his leg 
in the Tarrit Moss and for six weeks disappeared from the sight of men.  
But Johnnie at his best brought only the clash of the farm-towns and 
the news of Kirk Aller, and in the dead of the winter there was no 
chance of a post, so that David was buried as deep as if he had been 
in an isle of the Hebrides. It was only at Presbytery meetings that 
he heard tidings of the outer world, and these, passed through the 
minds of his excited brethren, were all of monstrous portents.
</para>
<para>
The Presbytery meetings in Kirk Aller were at first to David a welcome 
break in his quiet life. The one in November lasted two days, and he, 
as the youngest member, opened the exercises and discoursed with 
acceptance on a Scripture passage. The business was dull, being for 
the most part remits from the kirk sessions of contumacious heritors 
and local scandals and repairs to churches.  The sederunt over, the 
brethren adjourned to the Cross Keys Inn and dined off better fare 
than they were accustomed to in their manses.  It was then that Mr 
Muirhead in awful whispers told of news he had  had  by  special  
post  from  Edinburgh. Malignancy had raised its head again, this 
time in their own covenanted land.  Montrose, the recusant, had made 
his way north when he was least expected, and was now leading a host 
of wild Irish to the slaughter of the godly.  There had been battles 
fought, some said near Perth, others as far off as Aberdeen, and 
the victory had not been to the righteous.  Hideous tales were told 
of these Irish, led by a left-handed Macdonald-savage as Amalekites, 
blind zealots of Rome, burning and slaughtering and sparing neither 
sex nor age. The trouble, no doubt, would be short-lived, for Leven's 
men were marching from England, but it betokened some backsliding 
in God's people. The Presbytery held a special meeting for prayer, 
when in lengthy supplications the Almighty was besought to explain 
whether the sin for which this disaster was the punishment lay with 
Parliament or Assembly, army or people.
</para>
<para>
To David the tale was staggering. Montrose was to him only a name, the 
name of a great noble who had at first served the cause of Christ and 
then betrayed it.  This Judas had not yet gone to his account, was 
still permitted to trouble Israel, and now he had crowned his misdeeds 
by leading savages against his own kindly Scots.  Like all his nation 
he had a horror of the Irish, whose barbarity had become a legend, 
and of Rome, whom he conceived as an unsleeping Anti-Christ, given 
a lease of the world by God till the cup of her abomination was full.  
The news shook him out of his political supineness, and for the moment 
made him as ardent a Covenanter as Mr Muirhead himself. Then came 
the storm, when his head was filled with other concerns, and it was 
not till February that the Presbytery met again. This time the 
rumours were still darker. That very morning Mr Muirhead had had 
a post which spoke of Montrose ravaging the lands of that light 
of the Gospel, Argyll -- of his fleeing north and, at the moment 
when his doom seemed assured, turning on the shore of a Highland 
sea-loch and scattering the Covenant army. It was the hour of peril, 
and the nation must humble itself before the Lord. A national fast 
had been decreed by Parliament, and it was resolved to set apart 
a day in each parish when some stout defender of the faith should 
call the people to examination and repentance. Mr Proudfoot of Bold 
was one of the chosen vessels, and it was agreed that he should take 
the sermon on the fast-day in Woodilee in the first week of March.
</para>
<para>
But David was now in a different mood from that of November.  He 
repressed with horror an unregenerate admiration for this Montrose, 
who, it seemed, was still young, and with a handful of caterans had 
laid an iron hand on the north. He might be a fine soldier, but he 
was beyond doubt a son of Belial.  The trouble with David was the 
state of his own parish, compared with which the sorrows of Argyll 
seemed dim and far-away.
</para>
<para>
January, after the snows melted, had been mild and. open, with the 
burns running full and red, and the hills one vast plashing bog. With 
Candlemas came a black frost, which lasted the whole of February and 
the first half of March. The worst of the winter stringency was now 
approaching. The cattle in the yards and the sheep in the paddocks 
had become woefully lean, the meal in the girnels was running low, 
and everybody in the parish, except. one or two of the farmers, had 
grown thin and pale-faced.  Sickness was rife, and in one week the 
kirkyard saw six burials. . . . It was the season of births, too, 
as well as of deaths, and the howdie [*] was never off the road.
</para>
<footnote>
* midwife.
</footnote>
<para>
Strange stories came to his ears.  One-half of the births were out 
of lawful wedlock . .  and most of the children were still-born. A 
young man is slow to awake to such a condition and it was only the 
miserable business of the stool of repentance which opened his eyes. 
Haggard girls occupied the stool and did penance for their sin, but 
in only one case did the male paramour appear. . . . He found his 
Session in a strange mood, for instead of being eager to enforce the 
law of the Kirk, they seemed to desire to hush up the scandals, as 
if the thing was an epidemic visitation which might spoil their own 
repute. He interrogated them and got dull replies; he lost his temper 
and they were silent. Where were the men who had betrayed these wretched 
girls? He repeated the question and found only sullen faces. One 
Sabbath he abandoned his ordinary routine and preached on the abominations 
of the heathen with a passion new to his hearers.  His discourse was 
appreciated, and he was congratulated on it by Ephraim Caird; but 
there was no result, no confession, such as he had hoped for, from 
stricken sinners, no cracking of the wall of blank obstinate silence. . . . 
The thing was never out of his mind by day or night. What was 
betokened by so many infants born dead?  He felt himself surrounded 
by a mystery of iniquity.
</para>
<para>
One night he spoke of it to Isobel, very shamefacedly, for it seemed 
an awful topic for a woman, however old. But Isobel was no more 
communicative than the rest. Even her honest eyes became shy and 
secretive. &quot;Dinna you fash yoursel', sir,&quot; she said. &quot;The Deil's 
thrang in this parochine, and ye canna expect to get the upper hand 
o' him in sax months. But ye'll be even wi' him yet, Mr Sempill, wi' 
your graund Gospel preachin'.&quot; And then she added that on which he 
pondered many times in the night watches.  &quot;There will aye be trouble 
at this time o' year so long as the folk tak' the Wud at Beltane.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The fast-day came and Mr Proudfoot preached a marrowy sermon. His subject 
was the everlasting fires of Hell, which awaited those who set their 
hand against a covenanted Kirk, and he exhausted himself in a minute 
description of the misery of an eternity of torment. &quot;They shall be 
crowded,&quot; he said, &quot;like bricks in a fiery furnace. o' what a bed is 
there!  No feathers, but fire; no friends, but furies; no ease, but 
fetters; no daylight, but darkness; no clock to pass away the time, 
but endless eternity; fire eternal that ever burns and never dies 
away.&quot; He excelled in his conclusion.   Oh, my friends,&quot; he cried, 
&quot;I have given you but a short touch of the torments of Hell. Think of 
a barn or some other great place filled up top -- full with grains of 
corn; and think of a bird coming every thousand years and fetching 
away one of those grains of corn. In time there might be an end of 
all and the barn might be emptied, but the torments of Hell have no 
end. Ten thousand times ten millions of years doth not at all 
shorten the miseries of the damned.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was a hush like death in the crowded kirk. A woman screamed in 
hysterics and was carried out, and many sobbed. At the close the elders 
thronged around Mr Proudfoot and thanked him for a discourse so 
seasonable and inspired. But David spoke no word, for his heart had 
sickened. What meant these thunders against public sin when those who 
rejoiced in them were ready to condone a flagrant private iniquity? 
For a moment he felt that Montrose the apostate, doing evil with clean 
steel and shot, was less repugnant to God than his own Kirk Session.
</para>
<para>
The frost declined in mid-March, there was a fortnight of weeping thaw 
and a week of bitter east winds, and then in a single night came a 
south wind and Spring blew up the glens.
</para>
<para>
Isobel chased the minister from his books.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Awa' to the hill like a man, and rax [*] your legs. Ye've had a sair 
winter and your face is like a dish-clout. Awa' and snowk up the 
caller air.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David Went out to the moors, and on the summit of the Hill of Deer 
had a prospect of the countryside, the contours sharp in the clear 
April light, and colour stealing back after the grey of winter. The 
Wood of Melanudrigill seemed to have crowded together again, and 
to have regained its darkness, but there was as yet no mystery in 
its shadows. The hill itself was yellow like old velvet, but green 
was mantling beside the brimming streams. The birches were still 
only a pale vapour, but there were buds on the saughs and the hazels. 
Remnants of old drifts lay behind the dykes, and on the Lammer Law 
there was a great field of snow, but the, breeze blew soft and the 
crying of curlews and plovers told of the spring.  Up on Windyways 
and at the back of Reiverslaw the heather was burning, and spirals 
of blue smoke rose to the pale skies.
</para>
<footnote>
* stretch
</footnote>
<para>
The sight was a revelation to a man to whom Spring had come hitherto 
in the narrow streets of Edinburgh. He had a fancy that life was 
beating furiously under the brown earth, and that he was in the 
presence of a miracle.  His youth, long frosted by winter, seemed 
to return to him and his whole being to thaw.  Almost shamefacedly 
he acknowledged an uplift of spirit. The smoke from the moorburn was 
like the smoke of sacrifice on ancient altars-innocent sacrifice 
from kindly altars.
</para>
<para>
That night in his study he found that he could not bring his mind to 
his commentary on the prophet Isaiah. His thoughts ranged on other 
things, and he would fain have opened his Virgil. But, since these' 
evening hours were dedicate to theology, he compromised with Clement 
of Alexandria,' and read again the passage where that father of the 
Church becomes a poet and strives to mingle the classic and the 
Christian. -- <ital>&quot;This is the Mountain beloved of God, not a place of 
tragedies like Cithaeron, but consecrate to the dramas of truth, a 
mount of temperance shaded with the groves of purity. And there revel 
on it not the Maenads, sisters of Semele the thunderstruck, initiate 
in the impure feast of flesh, but God's daughters, fair Lambs who 
celebrate the holy rites of the Word, chanting soberly in chorus.&quot;</ital>
</para>
<para>
In these days his sermons changed. He no longer hammered subtle chains 
of doctrine, but forsook his ~ and preached to the hearts of the people. 
Woodilee was in turn mystified, impressed, and disquieted. One bright 
afternoon he discoursed on thankfulness and the praise due to God. 
&quot;Praise Him,&quot; he cried, &quot;if you have no more, for this good day and 
sunshine to the lambs.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Heard ye ever the like?&quot; said Mirehope at the, kirk door.  &quot;What 
concern has Jehovah wi' our lambin'?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He's an affectionate preacher,&quot; said Chasehope, &quot;but he's no 
Boanerges, like Proudfoot o' Bold.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The other agreed, and though the tone of the two men was regretful, 
their eyes were content, as if they had no wish for a Boanerges 
in Woodilee.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter V</chapnum>
<title>The Black Wood By Day</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>ON</emph> the 22nd day of April the minister went for a walk on the Hill of 
Deer.  He had heard news from Isobel which had awakened his numbed 
memory.  All the long dark winter Woodilee had been severed from the 
world, and David had also lived in the cage and had had no thoughts 
beyond the parish.  Calidon and its people were as little in his mind 
as if they had been on another planet.  But as Spring loosened the 
bonds word of the neighbourhood's doings was coming in.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Johnnie Dow's ben the house,&quot; Isobel had said as he sat at meat.  &quot;He's 
come down the water frae Calidon, and it seems there's unco changes 
there.  The laird is awa' to the wars again. . . . Na, Johnnie didna 
ken what airt he had ridden. He gaed off ae mornin' Wi his man Tam 
Purves, baith o' them on muckle horses, and that's the last heard o' 
them. It seems that the laird's gude-sister, Mistress Saintserf frae 
Embro, cam oot a fortnight syne to tak' chairge o' Calidon and the 
young lassie -- there's a lassie bides there, ye maun ken, sir, though 
nane o' the Woodilee folk ever cast een on her-and the puir body was 
like to be smoored [*] in the Carnwath Moss.  Johnnie says she's an 
auld wumman as straucht as a wand and Wi' an unco ill	tongue in her 
heid.  She fleyed Jolinnie awa' frae the door when he was for daffin' 
wi' the serving lasses.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* smothered.
</footnote>
<para>
It was of Calidon that David thought as he took the hill.  Nicholas 
Hawkshaw, lame as he was, had gone back to the wars.  What wars? 
Remembering the talk of that autumn night he feared that it could 
not be a campaign of which' a minister of the Kirk would approve.  
Was it possible that he had' gone to join Montrose in his evil work? 
And the troopers and the groom? Were they with Leven again under the 
Covenant's banner, or were they perilling their souls with the malignants?  
The latter most likely, and to his surprise he felt no desire to 
reprobate them.  Spring was loosening other bonds than those of winter.
</para>
<para>
It was a bright warm day, which might have been borrowed from June, 
and the bursting leaves were stirred by a wandering west wind.  David 
sat for a little on the crest of the hill, gazing at the high summits, 
which, in the April light, were clear in eyery nook and yet infinitely 
distant. The great Herstane Craig had old snowdrifts still in its ravines, 
and he had the fancy that it was really built of marble which shone in 
places through the brown husk.  The Green Dod did not now belie its 
name; above the screes and heather of its flanks rose a cone of dazzling 
greenness.  The upper Aller glen was filled with pure sunshine, the very 
quintessence of light, and the sword-cut of the Rood was for once free 
from gloom. There was no gold in the landscape, for the shallows, even 
when they caught the sun, were silver, the bent was flushing into 
the palest green, the skies above were an in-finity of colourless 
light. And yet the riot of Spring was there.  David felt it in his 
bones and in his heart.
</para>
<para>
The herd of Reiverslaw was busy with his late lambs.  The man, Prentice 
by name, was a sour fellow whom an accident in childhood had deprived 
of a leg.  In spite of his misfortune he could move about on a single 
crutch at a good pace, and had a voice and a tongue which the parish 
feared.  He was a noted professor, with an uncanny gift of prayer, 
and his by-names in Woodilee were &quot; Hirplin' Rab&quot; and the' &quot;One Leggit 
Prophet.&quot;  But to-day even Prentice seemed mellowed by the Spring.  
He gave David a friendly good-day. &quot;The voice o' the turtle is heard 
on the yirth,&quot; he announced, and as he hobbled over a patch of old 
moorburn, sending up clouds of grey dust, Prentice too became a 
figure of pastoral.
</para>
<para>
David had rarely felt a more benignant mood. The grimness of winter had 
gone clean out of his mind, and he had entered on a large and gracious 
world.  He walked slowly like an epicure, drinking in the quintessential 
air of the hills, marking the strong blue swirl of the burns, the fresh 
green of the mosses, the buds on the hawthorns, the flash of the 
water-ouzels in the spray of the little falls. Curlews and peewits filled 
the moor with their crying, and ,as he began to descend into the Rood 
glen a lark-the fitst he had heard-rose to heaven with a flood of song.
</para>
<para>
His eyes had been so engaged with the foreground that he had not looked 
towards Melanudrigill.  Now he saw it, dark and massy, the only opaque 
thing in a translucent world.  But there was nothing oppressive in 
its shadows, for oppression could not exist in a scene so full of 
air and light and song.  For a moment he had a mind to go boldly into 
its coverts by way of Reiverslaw and make for the lower course of the 
Woodilee burn. But the sight of the wild wood in the Rood glen detained 
him.  It was a day not for the pines but for the hazels and birches, 
where in open glades a man would have always a view of the hills and 
the sky.  So he slanted to his right 'through the open coppice, meaning 
to reach the valley floor near the foot of 'the path which led to the 
Greenshiel.
</para>
<para>
The coppice was thicker than he had imagined. This was no hillside scrub, 
but a forest, a greenwood, with its own glades and hollows, its own 
miniature glens and streams.  He was in the midst of small birds who 
made a cheerful twittering from the greening boughs, cushats too were 
busy, and the thickets were full of friendly beasts.  He saw the russet 
back of a deer as it broke cover, and the tawny streak of a hill-fox, 
and there was a perpetual scurrying of rabbits.  Above all there was a 
glory of primroses.  The pale blossoms starred the glades and the sides 
of the dells, clung to tree-roots, and climbed into crannies of the 
grey whinstone rock.  So thick they were, that their paleness became 
golden, the first strong colour he had seen that day.  David was young 
and his heart was light, so he gathered a great clump of blooms for 
his manse table, and set a bouquet in his coat and another in his bonnet.  
These latter would have to go before he reached the highway or the 
parish would think that its minister had gone daft.  But here in the 
secret greenwood he could forget decorum and bedeck himself 
like a child.
</para>
<para>
Presently he had forgotten the route he had ' planned.  He found 
himself in a shallow glade which ran to the left and away from the 
Greenshiel, and down which leaped a burn so entrancing in its madcap 
grace that he could not choose but follow it.  Memory returned to him 
this must be the burn which descended near the mill at Roodfoot; he 
knew well its lower course, for he had often guddled trout in its 
pools, but he had never explored its upper waters.  Now he felt the 
excitement of a discoverer. . . .  The ravine narrowed to a cleft where 
the stream fell in a white spout into a cauldron.  David made the 
passage by slithering down the adjacent rocks and emerged wet to the 
knees.  He was as amused as a boy playing truant from school, and when 
he found a water-ouzel's nest in the notch of a tree-root he felt that 
he had profit of his truancy.  There came a more level stretch, which 
was a glory of primroses and wood-anemones, then another linn, and 
then a cup of turf rimmed with hazels, where the water twined in 
placid shallows. . . .  He looked up and saw on the opposite bank 
a regiment of dark pines.
</para>
<para>
He had come to the edge of Melanudrigill.  The trees rose like a cloud 
above him, and after the open coppice of birch and hazel he seemed to 
be looking into deep water where things were seen darkly as through 
a dull glass.  There were glades which ran into shadows, and fantastic 
rocks, and mounds of dead bracken which looked like tombs. Yet the 
place fascinated him.  It, too, was, under the spell of Spring, and 
he wondered how Spring walked in its recesses.  He leapt the stream 
and scrambled up the bank with an odd feeling of expectation.  He was 
called to adventure on this day of days.
</para>
<para>
The place was not dark but dim and very green. The ancient pines grew 
more sparsely than he had imagined, and beneath them were masses of 
sprouting ferns -- primroses too, and violets which he had not found among 
the hazels.  A scent of rooty dampness was about, of fresh-turned earth, 
and welling fountains.  In every tree-root wood-sorrel clustered.  
But there were no small birds, only large things like cushats and hawks 
which made a movement in the high branches.  A little further and he 
was in a glade, far more of a glade than the clearings in the hazels, 
for it was sharply defined by the walls of shade.
</para>
<para>
He stood and gazed, stuck silent by its beauty. Here in truth was a 
dancing-floor for wood nymphs, a playground for the Good Folk.  It 
seemed strange that the place should be untenanted.  . .  There was 
a 'rustling in the covert, and his heart beat. He was no longer the 
adventurous boy, but a young man with a fancy fed by knowledge.  He 
felt that the glade was aware and not empty.  Light feet had lately 
brushed its sward. . . .   There was a rustling again, and a gleam 
of colour.  He stood poised like a runner, his blood throbbing in 
a sudden rapture.
</para>
<para>
There was the gleam again and the rustle.  He thought that at the far 
end of the glade behind the red bracken he saw a figure.  In two steps 
he was certain. A green gown fluttered, and at his third step broke 
cover.  He saw the form of a girl nymph, fairy, or mortal, he knew 
not which.  He was no more the minister of Woodilee, but eternal 
wandering youth, and he gave chase.
</para>
<para>
The green gown wavered for a moment between two gnarled pines and 
then was lost in the dead fern.  He saw, it again in the cleft 
of a tiny rivulet which came down from a pile of rocks, but he missed 
it as he scrambled up the steep.  It seemed that the gown played 
tricks with him and led him on, for, as he checked at fault, he had 
a glimpse of it lower down where an aisle in the trees gave a view 
of the bald top of a mountain.  David was young and active, but the 
gown was swifter than he, for as he went down the slope in great leaps 
it vanished into the dusk of the pines.  He had it again, lost' it, 
found it suddenly high above him-always a glimmer of green with but 
a hint of a girl's form behind it. . . .  David became wary.  Nymph or 
human, it should not beat him at this sport of hide-and-seek.  There 
was a line of low cliffs above, up which it could not go unless it took 
wings.  David kept the lower ground, determined that he would drive that 
which he followed towards the cliff line. He succeeded, for after twice 
trying to break away, the gown fluttered into a tiny ravine, with thick 
scrub on both sides and the rock wall at the top. As David panted upward 
he saw in a mossy place below the crags a breathless girl trying to 
master her tumbling tresses.
</para>
<para>
He stopped short in a deep embarrassment.  He had been pursuing a fairy, 
and had found a mortal -- a mortal who looked down on him with a flushed 
face and angry eyes. He was furiously hot, and the pace and his 
amazement bereft him of speech.  It was she who spoke first.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What does the minister of Woodilee in the Wood -- and bedecked 
with primroses?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The voice was familiar, and as he brushed the sweat from his eyes 
the face too awoke recollection. She was far cooler than he, but 
her cheeks 'were flushed, and he had seen before those dark mirthful
eyes.  Mirthful they were, for her anger seemed to have gone, and she 
was looking down on him with a shy amusement.  She had recognised him 
too, and had spoken his name. . . .  He had it.  It was the girl 
who had curtsied to Nicholas Hawkshaw's guests in the candle-light 
at Calidon.  His abashment was increased.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Madam,&quot; he stammered, &quot;Madam, I thought you were a fairy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She laughed out loud with the abandonment of childhood.  &quot;A fairy! And, 
pray, sir, is it part of the duties of a gospel minister to pursue 
fairies in the woods?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am shamed,&quot; he cried.  &quot;You do well to upbraid me.  But on this 
spring day I had forgot my sacred calling and dreamed I was 'a boy' 
once more.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not upbraid you.  Indeed I am glad that a minister can still be 
a boy.  But folks do not come here, and I thought the wood my own, so 
when I saw you stumbling among the fern I had a notion to play a trick 
on you, and frighten you, as I have frightened intruders before.  I 
thought you would run away.  But you were too bold for me, and now 
you have discovered my secret.  This wood is my playground where I 
can pick flowers and sing ballads and be happy with birds and beasts. . . 
You were a man before you were a minister. What is your name?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;They call me David Sempill.  I lived as a child at the Mill of the 
Roodfoot.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then you have seisin of this land.  You too have played in the Wood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nay, madam, the Wood is strange to me. I have but ridden through it, 
and till to-day I have, had some dread of it.  This Melanudrigill 
is ill reputed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Old wives' havers!  It is as blessed and innocent place.  But I do 
not like that name -- Melanudrigill. There is dark magic there.  Call 
it the Wood, and you will love it as I do. . . .  See, I am coming down.  
Make room, please, and then I will take you to Paradise.  You do not 
know Paradise? It is the shrine of this grove, and no'ne but me can 
find the road.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This was not the stately lady in the gown of yellow satin and blue 
velvet who had abashed him that night in Calidon tower.  It was a 
slim laughing girl in green who presently stood beside him, her feet 
in stout country shoes, her hair bound only by a silk fillet and still 
unruly from the chase.  He suddenly lost his embarrassment.  His reason 
told him that this was Katrine Yester of Calidon, a daughter of a proud 
and contumacious house that was looked askance at by the godly, a woman, 
a beauty -- commodities of which he knew nothing.  But his reason was 
blinded and he 'saw only a girl on a spring holiday.
</para>
<para>
The led him down the hill, and as she went she chattered gaily, 
like a solitary child who has found a comrade.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I saw you before you saw me, and I hoped you would follow when I 
ran away.  I liked you that night at Calidon. They told me that 
ministers, were all sour-faced and old, but you looked kind.  And 
you are merry, too, I think -- not sad, like most people in Scotland.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have not been long in this land?&quot; he asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Since June of last year. This is my first Scottish spring, and it 
is different from France and England. In those lands summer comes 
with a rush on winter's heels, but here there is a long preparation, 
and flowers steal very softly back to the world.  I have lived mostly 
in France since my father died.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is why your speech is so strange to my ears.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And yours to mine,&quot; she retorted. &quot;But Aunt Grizel is teaching me 
to be a good Scot's woman.' I am made to spin till my arms are weary, 
and to make horrid brews of herbs, and to cook your strange dishes. 
'Kaatrine, ye daft quean, what for maun ye fill the hoose wi' floorish 
and nesty green busses?  D'ye think we're nowt and the auld tower o' 
Calidon a byre?' That is Aunt Grizel. But she is like a good dog 
and barks but does not bite, though the serving-maids walk in terror.  
I play with her at the cartes, and she tells me tales, but not such 
good ones as Uncle Nick's.  Heigho! I wish the wars were over and 
he were home again. . . Now, sir, what do you think of this? It 
is the gate of Paradise.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She had led him into a part of the wood where the pines ceased and 
a green cleft was lined with bursting hazels and rowans and the tassels 
of birch. The place was rather hill than woodland, for the turf was 
as fine as on a mountain-side, and in the centre a bubbling spring 
sent out a rivulet, which twined among the flowers till it dropped 
in a long cascade to a lower shelf.  Primroses, violets, and anemones 
made it as bright as a garden.
</para>
<para>
I call this Paradise,&quot; she said, &quot;because it is hard for mortals to 
find. You would not guess it was here till you stumbled on it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's away from the pines,&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
She nodded her head. &quot;I love the dark trees well enough and on a day 
like this I am happy among them.  But they are moody things, and when 
there is no sun and the wind blows they make me sad. Here I am gay 
in any weather, for it is a kindly place.  Confess, sir, that I have 
chosen well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have chosen well.  It is what the poet wrote of --
 <ital>Deus haec nobis otia fecit</ital> .&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;La, la! That is Latin and I am not learned. But I can quote my own 
poets.&quot; And in a voice like a bird's she trilled a stanza of which 
David comprehended no more than that it was a song of Spring and 
that it was Flora the goddess herself who sang it.
</para>
<poem><verse><line>
&quot;O fontaine Bellerie,</line><line>
Belle fontaine cherie</line><line>
De nos Nymphes, quand ton eau</line><line>
Les cache au creux de ta source,</line><line>
Fuyantes le Satyreau</line><line>
Qui les pourchasse a la course</line><line>
Jusquau bord de ton ruisseau,</line><line>
Tu es la Nymphe eternelle</line><line>
De ma terre paternelle -- &quot;
</line></verse></poem>
<para>
Some strange and cataclysmic transformation was going on in David's 
mind.  He realised that a film had cleared from his sight and that 
he was looking with new eyes.  This dancing creature had unlocked 
a door for him -- whether for good or ill, he knew not, and did not 
care.  He wanted the world to stand still and the scene to remain 
fixed for ever -- the Spring glade and the dark-haired girl singing 
among the primroses.  He had the courage now to call her by her name,
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have a voice like a linnet, Mistress Katrine. Can you sing none 
of our country songs?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am learning them from the serving-maids.  I know 'The Ewebuclits' 
and 'The Yellow-hair'd Laddie' and -- ah, this is the one for Paradise,&quot; 
and she sang:
</para>
<para>
&quot;The King's young dochter was sitting in her window,
Sewing at her silken seam;
She lookt out o' a bow-window,
And she saw the leaves growing green, 
	My luve;
And she saw the leaves growing green.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But Jean, the goose-girl who taught it me, remembered just 
the one verse.  I wish I was a poet to make others.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Above the spring was one of those circles of green mounds which 
country people call fairy-rings. The girl seated herself in the 
centre and began to make posies of the flowers she had picked.  
David lay on the turf at her feet, watching the quick movenient 
of her hands, his garlanded hat removed and the temperate sun warming 
his body.  Never had he felt so bathed in happy peace.
</para>
<para>
The pixie seated above him spared time from her flowers to glance down 
at him, and found him regarding her with abstracted eyes. For he was 
trying to fit this bright creature into his scheme of things. Did the 
world of the two of them touch nowhere save in this woodland?
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your uncle is the chief heritor in Woodilee parish,&quot; he said, &quot;but 
you do not come to the kirk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was there no longer back than last Sunday -- &quot; she said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sabbati,&quot; he corrected.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sabbath, if you will have it so.  Calidon is in Cauldshaw parish, and 
it was to Cauldshaw kirk we went. Four weary miles of jogging on 
a plough-horse, I riding pillion to Aunt Grizel. Before that the 
drifts were too deep to take the road. . . . I have heard many a 
sermon from Mr Fordyce.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is a good man.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is a dull man. Such a preachment on dismal texts.  'Seventhly, my 
brethren, and in parenthesis -- '&quot; she mimicked. &quot;But he is beyond doubt 
good, and Aunt Grizel says she has benefited from his words, and would 
fain repay him by healing his disorders. He has many bodily disorders, 
the poor man, and Aunt Grizel loves sermons much but her simples more.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You do not love sermons?&quot;
</para>
<para>
She made a mouth.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not think I follow them. You are learned theologians, you of 
Scotland, and I am still at the horn-book. But someday I will come 
to hear you, for your sermons I think I might understand.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I could not preach to you,&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And wherefore, sir? Are your discourses only for wrinkled earls and 
old rudas wives? Is there no place in your kirk for a girl?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are not of our people. The seed can be sown only in a field prepared.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But that is heresy. Are not all souls alike?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;True.  But the voice of the preacher is heard only by open ears. I think 
you are too happy in your youth, mistress, for my solemnities.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You do me injustice,&quot; she said, and her face was grave.  &quot;I am young, 
and I think I have a cheerful heart, for I can exult in a Spring morning 
and I cannot be very long sad.  But I have had sorrows -- a father slain 
in the wars, a mother dead of grieving, a bundling about among kinsfolk 
who were not all gracious. I have often had sore need of comfort, sir.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have found it -- where?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In the resolve never to be a faintheart. That is my creed, though 
I fail often in the practice.&quot;
</para>
<para>
To an ear accustomed to a formal piety the confession seemed almost a 
blasphemy. He shook a disapproving head.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is but a cold pagan philosophy,&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yet I learned it from a sermon, and that little more than a year back.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where was it preached?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In England, and in no kirk, but at the King's Court.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Was it by Mr Henderson?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was by a Presbyterian -- but he was no minister. Listen, and I will 
tell you the story. In March of last year I was taken to Oxford by my 
lady Grevel and was presented by her to the Queen, and her Majesty deigned 
to approve of me, so that I became a maid-of-honour and was lodged beside 
her in Merton College. There all day long was a coming and going of great 
men. There I saw -- she counted on her fingers -- &quot; my lord of Hamilton
-- him I did not like -- and my lord of Nithsdale, and my lord of Aboyne, 
and my lord Ogilvy, and that very grave person Sir Edward Hyde, and my 
lord Digby, and the wise Mr Endymion Porter. And all day long there 
were distracted counsels, and the King's servants plotting in 
side-chambers, and treason whispered, and nowhere a clear vision or a 
brave heart. Then there came among us a young man, who spoke simply.  
'If the King's cause go down in England,' he said, 'it may be saved in 
Scotland.' When they asked him what he proposed, he said -- ' To raise 
the North for his Majesty.' When they asked him by what means, he 
said -- ' By my own resolution.' All doubted and many laughed, but 
that young man was not discouraged. 'The arm of the Lord is not shortened,' 
he said, 'and they who trust in Him will not be dismayed. . . . 
' That was the sermon he preached, and there was silence among the 
doubters. Then said Mr Porter: 'There is a certain faith that moves 
mountains and a certain spirit which may win against all odds. My voice 
is for the venture!'. . . And then the Queen my mistress kissed the 
young man, and the King made him his lieutenant-general. . . . I watched 
him ride out of the city two days later, attended by but one servant, 
on his mission to conquer Scotland, and I flung him a nosegay of early 
primroses.  He caught it and set it in his breast, and he waved his 
hand to me as he passed through the north gate.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Who was this hero?&quot; David asked eagerly, for the tale had fired him.
</para>
<para>
The girl's face was flushed and her eyes glistened. &quot;That was a year 
ago,&quot; she went on.  &quot;To-day he has done his purpose. He has won Scotland 
for the King.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David gasped.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Montrose the malignant!&quot; he cried.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is as good a Presbyterian as you, sir,&quot; she replied gently. &quot;Do not 
call him malignant. He made his way north through his enemies as if God 
had sent His angel to guide him. And he is born to lead men to triumph. 
Did you not feel the compulsion of his greatness?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I?&quot; David stammered.
</para>
<para>
&quot;They told me that you had spoken with him and that he liked you well. 
Yon groom at Calidon was the Lord Marquis.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter VI</chapnum>
<title>The Black Wood By Night</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>WORD</emph> came of a great revival in the parish of Bold. Men called it a 
&quot;work,&quot; and spoke of it in hushed voices, attributing it to the zeal 
and gifts of Mr Ebenezer Proudfoot, the minister. For, after much 
preaching on fast-days in the shire, Mr Ebenezer had fallen into a 
rapture and had seen visions and spoken with strange voices. The 
terror of the unknown fell upon his people, fasting and prayer became 
the chief business of the parish, and the most careless were transformed 
into penitents. For a season there were no shortcomings in Bold; 
penny-bridals and fiddling and roystering at the change-houses were 
forgotten; even swearing and tippling were forsworn; the Sabbath was 
more strictly observed than by Israel in the Wilderness.  To crown 
the Work a great field-preaching was ordained, when thousands assembled 
on Bold Moor and the sacrament was dispensed among scenes of wild emotion. 
In Bold there was a lonely field of thistles, known as Guidman's Croft, 
which had been held to be dedicate to the Evil One. The oxen of all 
the parish were yoked, and in an hour or two it was ploughed up and 
sown with bear for the use of the poor, as at once a thank-offering 
and a renunciation.
</para>
<para>
People in Woodilee talked much of the Work in Bold and the Session 
sighed for a like experience. &quot;Would but the wind blow frae that airt 
on our frostit lands!&quot; was the aspiration of Peter Pennecuik. But 
David had no ears for these things, for was engrossed with the conflict 
in his own soul.
</para>
<para>
Ever since that afternoon in Paradise he had walked like a man half 
asleep, his eyes turning inward. His first exhilaration had been 
succeeded by a black darkness of doubt. He had adventured into the 
Wood and found magic there, and the spell was tugging at his 
heartstrings. . . .  Was the thing of Heaven or of Hell? . . . 
Sometimes, when he remembered the girl's innocence and ardour, he 
thought of her as an angel. Surely no sin could dwell in so bright 
a presence  . . .  But he remembered, too, how lightly she had 
held the things of the Kirk, how indeed she was vowed to the world 
against which the Kirk made war. Was she not a daughter of Heth, a 
fair Moabitish woman, with no part in the commonwealth of Israel? 
Her beauty was of the flesh, her graces were not those of the redeemed.  
And always came the conviction that nevertheless she had stolen his 
heart. &quot;Will I too be unregenerate?&quot; he asked himself with terror.
</para>
<para>
The more he looked into his soul the more he was perplexed. He thought 
of the groom at Calidon, to whom had gone out from him a spark of such 
affection as no other had inspired. That face was little out of his 
memory, and he longed to look on it again as a lover longs for his 
mistress. . . .  But the man was Montrose the recreant, who was even 
now troubling God's people, and who had been solemnly excommunicated 
by the very Kirk he was vowed to serve. . . . And yet, recreant or no, 
the man believed in God and had covenanted himself with the Almighty. . . .  
What were God's purposes, and who were God's people? Where in all 
the round earth should he find a solution of his doubts?
</para>
<para>
The study, now warm in the pleasant Spring gloamings, saw no longer 
the preparation of the great work on Isaiah. It had become a closet 
for prayer. David cast his perplexities on the Lord and waited feverishly 
for a sign.  But no sign came. A horde of texts about Canaanitish 
garments and idol worship crowded into his mind, but he refused their 
application. A young man's face, a girl's eyes and voice, made folly 
of such easy formulas. . . Yet there were moments when in sheer torment 
of soul David was minded to embrace them -- to renounce what had charmed 
him as the Devil's temptation, and steel his heart against its glamour.
</para>
<para>
One day he rode over to Cauldshaw to see Mr Pordyce. He was in the mood 
for confession, but he found little encouragement. Mr James was sick 
of a spring fever, and though he was on his feet he had been better 
in bed, for his teeth chattered and his hand trembled.
</para>
<para>
They spoke of the household at Calidon. &quot;Mistress Saintserf has beyond 
doubt her interest in Christ,&quot; said the minister of Cauldshaw. &quot;When I 
have gone to Calidon for the catechising I have found her quick to 
apprehend the doctrines of the faith, and her life is in all respects 
an ensample, save that she is something of a libertine with her tongue. 
But the lassie -- she's but a young thing, and has sojourned long 
in popish and prelatical lands. Yet I detect glimmerings of grace, 
Mr. David, and she has a heart that may well be attuned to God's 
work. My wife pines for the sight of her like a sick man for the 
morning. Maybe I fail in my duty towards her, for she is lamentably 
ignorant, but I cannot find it in me to be harsh to so gracious a bairn.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David returned with his purpose unfulfilled but a certain comfort in 
his soul.  He would rather have Mr Fordyce's judgment than that of 
the Boanerges of Bold or the sleek minister of Kirk Aller. His doubts 
were not resolved, but the very uncertainty gave him ease. He was not 
yet called to renunciation, and having reached this conclusion, he 
could let the memory of Paradise sweep back into his mind in a delightful 
flood.
</para>
<para>
Yet youth cannot be happy in indecision. David longed for some duty 
which would absorb the strong life that was in him. Why, oh why was 
he not a soldier?  He turned to his parish, and tried to engross himself 
in its cares. It may have been that his perception was sharpened by his 
own mental conflicts, but he seemed to detect a strangeness in Woodilee.
</para>
<para>
It had been a fine Spring, with a dry seed-bed, and the sowing of crops 
and the lambing had passed off well. The lean cattle had staggered out 
of byres and closes to the young grass and their ribs were now covered 
again. Up on the hills lambs no longer tottered on weak legs. There was 
more food in the place, for there had been feasts of braxy mutton, and 
the hens were laying again, and there was milk in the cogies. The faces 
of the people had lost their winter strain; the girls had washed theirs, 
and fresh cheeks and bright eyes were to be seen on the roads. Woodilee 
had revived with the Spring, but David as he went among the folk saw 
more than an increase in bodily well-being. . . . There was a queer 
undercurrent of excitement -- or was it expectation ? -- and the 
thing was secret.
</para>
<para>
Everyone did not share this. There seemed to be an inner circle in 
the parish which was linked together by some private bond.  He began 
to guess at its membership by the eyes.  Some looked him frankly in 
the face, and these were not always the best reputed. Amos Ritchie, 
the blacksmith, for instance -- he was a profane swearer, and was 
sometimes overtaken in drink-and the farmer of Reiverslaw had, in 
addition to the latter failing, a violent temper, which made him 
feared and hated. Yet these two faced him like free men. But there were 
others, whose speech was often the most devout, who seemed to have 
shutters drawn over their eyes and to move stealthily on tiptoe.
</para>
<para>
Woodilee was amazingly well-conducted, and the Poor Box received the 
scantiest revenue in penalties. Apart from the lawless births in the 
winter, there were few apparent backslidings. David rarely met young 
lads and lasses at their hoydenish courtings in the gloamings.  Oaths 
were never heard, and if there was drunkenness it was done in secret. 
Not often was a Sabbath-breaker before the Session, and there were no 
fines for slack attendance at the kirk.  But as David watched the people 
thronging to service on the Sabbath, the girls in their clean linen, 
walking barefoot and only putting on shoes at the kirkyard gate, the 
men in decent homespun and broad bonnets, the old wives in their white 
mutches -- as he looked down from the pulpit on the shoulders bent with 
toil, the heavy features hardened to a stiff decorum, the eyes fixed 
dully on his face -- he had the sense that he was looking on masks. 
The real life of Woodilee was shut to him. &quot;Ye are my people,&quot; he 
told himself bitterly, &quot;and I know ye not.&quot;
</para>
<para>
This was not true of all. He knew the children, and there were certain 
of the older men and women in the parish who had given him their 
friendship. Peter Pennecuik, his principal elder and session-clerk, 
he felt that he knew to the bottom-what little there was to know, 
for the man was a sanctimonious egotist. With Amos Ritchie and Reiverslaw, 
too, he could stand as man with man. . . .  But with many of the others 
he fenced as with aliens; the farmers, for example, Chasehope and 
Mirehope, and Nether Fennan, and Spotswood the miller, and various 
elderly herds and hinds, and the wives of them. Above all he was no 
nearer the youth of the parish than when first he came.  The slouching 
hobbledehoy lads, the girls, some comely and high-coloured, some waxen 
white -- they were civil and decent, but impenetrable.  There were 
moments when he found himself looking of a Sabbath at his sober 
respectable folk as a hostile body, who watched him furtively lest 
he should learn too much of them.
Woodilee had an ill name in the shire, Mr Fordyce had told him the 
first day in the manse. For what? What was the life from which he 
was so resolutely barred -- he, their minister, who should know every 
secret of their souls? What was behind those shuttered eyes? Was it 
fear? He thought that there might be fear in it, but that more than 
fear it was a wild and sinister expectation.
</para>
<para>
On the last day of April he noted that Isobel was ill at ease. 
&quot;Ye'll be for a daunder, sir,&quot; she said after the midday meal. 
&quot;See and be hame in gude time for your supper-I've a rale guid 
yowe-milk kebbuck [*] for ye and a new bakin' o' cakes-and I'll 
hae the can'les lichtit in your chamber for you to get to your books.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* cheese.
</footnote>
<para>
He smiled at his housekeeper.   Why this carefulness?&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
She laughed uneasily.  &quot;Naething by ordinar. But this is the day they 
ca' the Rood-Mass and the morn is the Beltane, and it behoves a' decent 
bodies to be indoors at the darkenin' on Beltane's Eve. My faither was 
a bauld man, but he wadna have stirred a fit over his am doorstep on 
the night o' Rood-Mass for a king's ransom.  There's anither Beltane 
on the aught day of May, and till that's by we maun walk cidently.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Old wives' tales,&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But they're nane auld wives' tales. They're the tales o' wise 
men and bauld men.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thought of walking in the Wood.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mercy on us!&quot; she cried. &quot;Ye'll no gang near the Wud. No on this 
day o' a' days. It's fou' o' bogies.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Her insistence vexed him and he spoke to her sharply. The heavy 
preoccupation of his mind had put him out of patience with folly. 
&quot;Woman,&quot; he cried, &quot;what concern has a servant of God with these 
heathen fables? Think shame to repeat such folly.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But Isobel was not convinced.  She retired in dudgeon to her kitchen, 
and watched his movements till he left the house as a mother watches 
a defiant child. &quot;Ye'll be hame in guid time?&quot; she begged.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I will be home when I choose,&quot; he said, and to show his independence 
he put some cheese and bannocks in his pockets.
</para>
<para>
The afternoon was warm and bright with a: thin haze on the highest hills. 
Spring had now fairly come; the yews in the kirkyard were russet with 
young shoots, the blossom was breaking on the hawthorn, and hazel and 
oak and ash were in leaf. His spirit was too laden to be sensible of 
the sweet influences of sky and moorland as on the walk which had first 
taken him to Paradise. But there was in him what had been lacking before -- 
excitement, for he had tasted of magic and was in the constant 
expectation of finding it again. The land was not as it had once been, 
for it held somewhere enchantments-a girl's face and a girl's voice. 
From the summit of the Hill of Deer he looked towards Calidon hidden 
in the fold of the Rood hills. Was she there in the stone tower, 
or among the meadows whose green showed in the turn of the glen? 
Or was she in her old playground of the Wood?
</para>
<para>
He had resolved not to go near the place, so he set himself to walk 
in the opposite direction along the ridge of hill which made the 
northern wall of the Rood valley. As he strode over the short turf 
and scrambled through the patches of peat-bog his spirits rose. It 
was hard not to be light-hearted in that world of essential airs 
and fresh odours and nesting birds. Presently he was in view of 
Calidon tower, and then he was past it, and the Rood below him was 
creeping nearer to his level as its glen lifted towards its source. 
He strode along till he felt the sedentary humours leave his body 
and his limbs acquire the lightness which is the reward of the hill 
walker. He seemed, too, to gain a lightness of soul and a clearness 
of eye. In a world which God had made so fair and clean, there could 
be no sin in anything that was also fair and innocent.
</para>
<para>
The sun had set beyond Herstane Craig before he turned his steps. Now 
from the hilltops he had Melanudrigill before him, a distant shadow 
in the trough of the valley. Since that afternoon in Paradise awe of 
the Wood had left him. He had been among its pines and had found Katrine 
there. He watched the cloud of trees, growing nearer at each step, as 
earlier that day he had watched the environs of Calidon. It was her 
haunt; haply she might now be there, singing in the scented twilight?
</para>
<para>
When he stood above Reiverslaw the dusk was purple about him, and the 
moon, almost at her full, was climbing the sky. Fe longed to see how 
Paradise looked in this elfin light, for he had a premonition that the 
girl might have lingered there late and that he would meet her. There 
was no duty to take him home -- nothing but Isobel's silly fables. But 
in deference to Isobel he took the omens. He sent his staff twirling 
into the air. If it fell with the crook towards him, he would go home. 
The thing lighted in a heather bush with the crook at the far end. 
So he plunged downhill among the hazels, making for the glade which 
slanted eastward towards the deserted mill.
</para>
<para>
He found it, and it was very dark in that narrow place. There was no 
light to see the flowers by, and there was no colour in it, only a 
dim purple gloom and the white of the falling stream, for the moon 
was still too low in the heavens to reach it.
</para>
<para>
In time he came to the high bank where the pines began. He was 
looking for Paradise, but he could not find it. It was not among 
the pines, he remembered, but among the oaks and hazels, but he 
had gone to it through the pines, led by a flitting girl.
</para>
<para>
He found the point where he had entered the darker Wood and resolved 
to try to retrace his former tracks.
</para>
<para>
The place was less murky than he had expected, for the moon was now 
well up the sky, so that every glade was a patch of white light. . . . 
This surely was the open space where he had first caught the glimmer 
of a green gown. . . .  There were the rocks where she had stood at 
bay. . . . She had led him down the hill and then at a slant -- but 
was it to right or left? Right, he thought, and plunged through a 
wilderness of fern.  There had been briars, too, and this was surely 
the place where a vast uprooted trunk had forced them to make a detour.
</para>
<para>
Then he found a little stream which he fancied might be the outflow 
of the Paradise well. So he turned up hill again, and came into a 
jungle of scrub and boulder. There was in most places a dim light to 
move by, but a dim light in a broken wood is apt to confuse the mind. 
David had soon lost all sense of direction, save that of the upward 
and downward slopes. He did not know east or west, and he did not stop 
to think, for he was beginning to be mesmerised by the hour and the 
scene. Dew was in the air and an overpowering sweetness of fern and 
pine and mosses, and through the aisles of the high trees came a 
shimmer of palest gold, and in the open spaces the moon rode in the 
dusky blue heavens-not the mild moon of April but a fiery conquering 
goddess, driving her chariot among trampled stars.
</para>
<para>
It was clear to him that he would not find Paradise except by happy 
chance, since he was utterly out of his bearings. But he was content 
to be lost, for the whole place was Paradise.  Never before
had he felt so strong a natural magic. This woodland, which he had 
once shunned, had become a holy place, lit with heavenly lights and 
hallowed by some primordial peace. He had forgotten about the girl, 
forgotten his scruples. In that hour he had acquired a mood at once 
serene and gay: he had the light-heartedness of a boy and the ease of 
a wise philosopher; his body seemed as light as air, and, though he 
had already walked some twenty miles, he felt as if he had just risen 
from his bed. But there was no exuberance in him, and he had not the 
impulse to sing which usually attended his seasons of high spirits. . . . 
The silence struck upon him as something at once miraculous and 
just. There was not a sound in the Wood -- not the lightest whisper 
of wind, though there had been a breeze on the hilltops at sundown -- 
not the cry of a single bird -- not a rustle in the undergrowth. 
The place was dumb -- not dead, but sleeping.
</para>
<para>
Suddenly he came into a broad glade over which the moonshine flowed 
like a tide. It was all of soft mossy green, without pebble or bush 
to break its carpet, and in the centre stood a thing like an altar.
</para>
<para>
At first he thought it was only a boulder dropped from the hill. But 
as he neared it he saw that it was human handiwork.  Masons centuries 
ago had wrought on it, for it was roughly squared, and firmly founded 
on a pediment. Weather had battered it and one corner of the top had 
been broken by some old storm, but it still stood foursquare to the 
seasons. One side was very clear in the moon, and on it David thought 
he could detect a half-obliterated legend. He knelt down, and though 
the lower part was obscured beyond hope the upper letters stood out 
plain.  I. 0. M. -- he read:  &quot;Jovi Optimo Maximo.&quot; This uncouth thing 
had once been an altar.
</para>
<para>
He tiptoed away from it with a sudden sense of awe. Others had known 
this wood-mailed Romans clanking up the long roads from the south, 
white-robed priests who had once sacrificed here to their dead gods. 
He was scholar enough to feel the magic of this sudden window opened 
into the past. But there was that in the discovery which disquieted 
as well as charmed him. The mysteries of the heathen had been here, 
and he felt the simplicity of the woodland violated and its peace 
ravished.  Once there had been wild tongues in the air, and he almost 
seemed to hear their echo.
</para>
<para>
He hurried off into the dark undergrowth. . . . 
</para>
<para>
But now his mood had changed. He felt fatigue, his eyes were drowsy, 
and he thought of the anxious Isobel sitting up for him. He realised 
this was the night of Rood-Mass-pagan and papistical folly, but his 
reason could not altogether curb his fancy. The old folk said-folly, 
no doubt, but still --  He had an overpowering desire to be safe in 
his bed at the manse. He would retrace his steps and strike the road 
from Reiverslaw.  That would mean going west, and after a moment's 
puzzling he started to run in what he thought the right direction.
</para>
<para>
The Wood, or his own mind, had changed. The moonlight was no longer 
gracious and kind, but like the dead-fires which the old folk said 
burned in the kirkyard. Confusion on the old folk, for their tales 
were making him a bairn again! .  .  But what now broke the stillness? 
for it seemed as if there were veritably tongues in the air-not honest 
things like birds and winds, but tongues. The place was still silent 
so far as earthly sounds went -- he realised that, when he stopped to 
listen -- but nevertheless he had an impression of movement everywhere, 
of rustling -- yes, and of tongues.
</para>
<para>
Fortune was against him, for he reached a glade and saw that it was 
the one which he had left and which he thought he had avoided. . . . 
There was a change in it, for the altar in the centre was draped.  
At first he thought it only a freak of moonlight, till he forced 
himself to go nearer. Then he saw that it was a coarse white linen 
cloth, such as was used in the kirk at the seasons of sacrament.
</para>
<para>
The discovery affected him with a spasm of blind terror. All the tales 
of the Wood, all the shrinking he had once felt for it, rushed back 
on his mind. For the moment he was an infant again, lost and fluttering, 
assailed by the shapeless phantoms of the dark. He fled from the place 
as if from something accursed.
</para>
<para>
Uphill he ran, for he felt that safety was in the hills and that soon 
he might come to the clear spaces of the heather. But a wall of crag 
forced him back, and he ran as he thought westward towards the oaks 
and hazels, for there he deemed he would be free of the magic of the 
pines.  He did not run wildly, but softly and furtively, keeping to the 
moss and the darker places, and avoiding any crackling of twigs, for he 
felt as if the Wood were full of watchers. At the back of his head was 
a stinging sense of shame-that he, a grown man and a minister of God, 
should be in such a pit of terror. But his instinct was stronger than 
his reason. He felt his heart crowding into his throat, and his legs so 
weak and uncontrollable that they seemed to be separate from his body. 
The boughs of the undergrowth whipped his face, and he knew that his
cheeks were wet with blood, though he felt no pain.
</para>
<para>
The trees thinned and he saw light ahead -- surely it was the glen 
which marked the division between pine and hazel.  He quickened his 
speed and the curtain of his fear lifted ever so little. He heard 
sounds now -- was it the wind which he had left on the hilltops? There 
was a piping note in it, something high and clear and shrill -- and yet 
the Wood had been so airless that his body was damp with sweat. Now he 
was very near air and sanctuary.
</para>
<para>
His heart seemed to stop, and his legs wavered so that he sunk on his 
knees. For he was looking again on the accursed glade.
</para>
<para>
It was no longer empty. The draped altar was hidden by figures -- 
human or infernal -- moving round it in a slow dance.  Beyond this 
circle sat another who played on some instrument. The moss stilled 
the noise of movement, and the only sound was the high mad piping.
</para>
<para>
A film cleared from his eyes, and something lost came back to him -- 
manhood, conscience, courage. Awe still held him, but it was being 
overmastered by a human repulsion and anger. For as he watched the 
dance he saw that the figures were indeed human, men and women both -- 
the women half-naked, but the men with strange headpieces like animals. 
What he had taken for demons from the Pit were masked mortals -- one 
with the snout of a pig, one with a goat's horns, and the piper a 
gaping black hound.
</para>
<para>
As they passed, the altar was for a moment uncovered, and he saw that 
food and drink were set on it for some infernal sacrament.
</para>
<para>
The dance was slow and curiously arranged, for each woman was held 
close from behind by her partner. And they danced widdershins, against 
the sun. To one accustomed to the open movement of country jigs and 
reels the thing seemed the utter-most evil -- the grinning masks, the 
white tranced female faces, the obscene postures, above all that 
witch-music as horrid as a moan of terror.
</para>
<para>
David, a great anger gathering in his heart, was on his feet now; 
and as he rose the piping changed. Its slow measure became a crazy 
lilt, quick and furious. The piper was capering; the dancers, still 
going widdershins, swung round and leaped for-ward, flinging their 
limbs as in some demented reel.
</para>
<para>
There were old women there, for he saw grey hair flying. And now came 
human cries to add to the din of the pipes-a crying and a sighing wrung 
out of maddened bodies.
</para>
<para>
To David it seemed a vision of the lost in Hell. The fury of an Israelitish 
prophet came upon him. He strode into the glade. Devils or no, he would 
put an end to this convention of the damned.
</para>
<para>
&quot;In the name of God,&quot; he cried, &quot;I forbid you. If you are mortal, I 
summon you to repent -- if you are demons, I command you to return to him 
that sent you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He had a great voice, but in that company there were no ears to 
hear. The pipe screeched and the dance went on.
</para>
<para>
Then the minister of Woodilee also went mad. A passion such as he had 
never known stiffened every nerve and sinew. He flung himself into the 
throng, into that reek of unclean bestial pelts and sweating bodies. 
He reached the altar, seized the cloth on it, and swept it and its contents 
to the ground. Then he broke out of the circle and made for the capering 
piper, who seemed to him the chief of the orgiasts.
</para>
<para>
In his flight through the wood David had lost his staff, and had as weapon 
but his two hands. &quot;Aroynt you, Sathanas,&quot; he cried, snatched the pipe 
from the dog-faced figure, and shivered it on his masked head.
</para>
<para>
With the pause in the music the dance stopped suddenly, and in an instant 
the whole flock were on him like a weasel pack. He saw long nailed claws 
stretched towards his face, he saw blank eyes suddenly fire into a 
lust of hate. But he had a second's start of them, and that second he 
gave to the piper. The man -- for the thing was clearly human -- had 
dealt a mighty buffet at his assailant's face, which missed it, and 
struck the point of the shoulder. David was whirled round, but, being 
young and nimble, he slipped in under the other's guard, and had his 
hands on the hound-mask. The man was very powerful, but the minister's 
knee was in his groin, and he toppled over, while David tore the covering 
of wood and skin from his head.  It crumpled under his violent clutch 
like a wasps' nest, and he had a glimpse of red hair and a mottled face.
</para>
<para>
A glimpse and no more. For by this time the press was on him and fingers 
were at his throat, choking out his senses.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter VII</chapnum>
<title>The First Blast</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>LATE</emph> in the forenoon of the next day David awoke in his own bed in 
the manse of Woodilee. He awoke to a multitude of small aches and 
one great one, for his forehead was banded with pain. The room 
was as bright with sunshine as the little window would permit, but it 
seemed to him a dusk shot by curious colours, with Isobel's head 
bobbing in it like a fish. Presently the face became clear and he saw 
it very near to him -- a scared white face with red-rimmed eyes. Her 
voice penetrated the confused noises in his ears.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Lord be thankit, sir, the Lord be praised, Mr David, ye' re comm' 
oot o' your dwam. Here's a fine het drink for ye. Get it doun like a man 
and syne ye'll maybe sleep.  There's nae banes broke, and I've dressed 
your face wi' a sure salve. Dinna disturb the clouts, sir. Your skin's 
ower clean to beil,[*] and ye'll mend quick if ye let the clouts bide 
a wee.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* fester.
</footnote>
<para>
Her arm raised his aching head, and he swallowed the gruel. It made 
him drowsy, and soon he was asleep again, a healthy natural sleep, 
so that when he awoke in the evening he was in comparative ease and 
his headache had gone.  Gingerly he felt his body. There were bruises 
on his legs, and one huge one on his right thigh. His cheeks under 
the bandages felt raw and scarred, and there was a tenderness about 
his throat and the muscles of his neck, as if angry hands had throttled 
him. But apart from his stiffness he seemed to have suffered no great 
bodily hurt, and the effects of the slight concussion had passed.
</para>
<para>
With this assurance his mind came out of its torpor and he found 
himself in a misery of disquiet. The events of the night before returned 
to him only too clearly. He remembered his exaltation in the Wood -- 
the glade, the altar. He recalled with abasement his panic and his 
flight. The glade again, the piping, the obscene dance -- and at that 
memory he had almost staggered from his bed. He felt again the blind 
horror and wrath which had hurled him into the infernal throng.
</para>
<para>
Isobel's anxious face appeared in the doorway.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye've had a graund sleep, sir. Arid now ye'll be for a bite o' meat?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have slept and I am well enough in body. Sit you down, Isobel 
Veitch, for I have much to say to you. How came I home last night?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The woman sat down on the edge of a chair, and even in the twilight 
her nervousness was manifest.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It wasna last nicht. It was aboot the hour o' three this mornin', and 
sic a nicht as I had waitin' on ye! Oh, sir, what garred ye no hearken 
to me and gang to the Wud on Rood-Mass?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How do you know I was in the Wood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
She did not answer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tell me,&quot; he said, &quot;how I came home?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was ryngin' the hoose like a lost yowe, but I didna daur gang outbye. 
At twal hours I took a look up the road and again when the knock was 
chappin' twa. Syne I dozed off in my chair, till the knock waukened me. 
That was at three hours, and as I waukened I heard steps outbye.  
I keekit oot o' the windy, but there was naebody on the road, just the 
yellow mune. I prayed to the Lord to strengthen me, and by and by I 
ventured out, but I fand naething. Syne I took a thocht to try the back 
yaird, and my hert gied a stound, for there was yoursel', Mr David, 
lyin' like a cauld corp aneath the aipple tree. Blithe I was to find 
the breath still in ye, but I had a sair job gettin' ye to your bed, 
sir, for ye're a weary wecht for an auld wumman. The sun was up or 
I got your wounds washed and salved, and syne I sat by the bed 
prayin' to the Lord that ye suld wauken in your richt mind, for I saw 
fine that the wounds o' your body would heal, but I feared that the 
wits micht have clean gane frae ye. And now I am abundantly answered, 
for ye're speakin' like yoursel', and your cen''s as I mind them, 
and the blood's back intil your cheeks.  The Lord be thankit!&quot;
</para>
<para>
But there was no jubilation in Isobel's voice. Her fingers twined 
confusedly and her eyes wandered.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do you know what befell me?&quot; he asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Eh, sirs, how suld I ken?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But what do you think? You find me in the small hours lying senseless 
at your door, with my face scarred and my body bruised. What do you 
think I had suffered?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I think ye were clawed by bogles, whilk a'body kens are gi'en a free 
dispensation on Rood-Mass E'en.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Woman, what is this talk of bogles from lips that have confessed 
Christ? I was assaulted by the Devil, but his emissaries were flesh 
and blood.  I tell you it was women's nails that tore my face, and 
men's hands that clutched my throat. I walked in the Wood, for what 
has a minister of God to fear from trees and darkness? And as I walked 
I found in an open place a heathen altar and that altar was covered with 
a linen cloth, as if for a sacrament. I was afraid-I confess it with 
shame -- but the Lord used my fear for His own purpose, and led me back 
in my flight to that very altar. And there I saw what may God in His 
mercy forbid that I should see again -- a dance of devils to the Devil's 
piping. In my wrath I rushed among them, and tore the mask from the 
Devil's head, and then they overbore me and I lost my senses. When 
I wrestled with them I wrestled with flesh and blood -- perishing men 
and women rapt in a lust of evil.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He stopped, and Isobel's eyes did not meet his. &quot;Keep us a'!&quot; she moaned.
</para>
<para>
&quot;These men and women were, I firmly believe, my own parishioners.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It canna be,&quot; the old woman croaked. &quot;Ye werena yoursel', Mr David, sir. . . .  
Ye were clean fey wi' the blackness o' the Wud and the mune and the 
wanchancy hour. Ye saw ferlies,[*] but they werena flesh and bluid, sir.
</para>
<footnote>
* marvels.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;I saw the bodies of men and women in Woodilee who have sold their 
souls to damnation.  Isobel Veitch, as your master and your minister, 
I charge you, as you will answer before the Judgment Seat, what know 
you of the accursed thing in this parish?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Me!&quot; she cried. &quot;Me! I ken nocht. Me and my man aye keepit clear o' 
the Wud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Which is to say that there were others in Woodilee who did not. Answer 
me, woman, as you hope for salvation.  The sin of witchcraft is rampant 
here, and I will not rest till I have rooted it out. Who are those in 
Woodilee who keep tryst with the Devil?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;How suld I ken? Oh, sir, I pray ye to speir nae mair questions. Woodilee 
has aye been kenned for a queer bit, lappit in the muckle Wud, but the 
guilty aye come by an ill end. There's been mair witches howkit out o' 
Woodilee and brunt than in ony ither parochine on the Water o' Aller. 
Trust to your graund Gospel preachin', Mr David, to wyse folk a better 
gait, for if ye start speirin' about the Wud ye'll stir up a byke 
that will sting ye sair. As my faither used to say, him that spits against 
the wind spits in his am face. Trust to conviction o' sin bringin' 
evildoers to repentance, as honest Mr Macmichael did afore ye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did Mr Macmichael know of this wickedness?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I canna tell.  Nae doot he had a glimmerin'. But he was a quiet body 
wha keepit to the roads and his am fireside, and wasna like yoursel', 
aye ryngin' the country like a moss-trooper. . . . Be content, sir, to 
let sleepin' tykes lie till ye can catch them rauvagin'.  Ye've a 
congregation o' douce eident folk, and I'se warrant ye'll lead them 
intil the straight and narrow way. Maybe the warst's no as ill as ye 
think. Maybe it's just a sma' backslidin' in them that's pilgrims 
to Sion. They're weel kenned to be sound in doctrine, and there was 
mair signed the Covenant -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peace,&quot; he cried. &quot;This is rank blasphemy, and a horrid hypocrisy.  
What care I for lip service when there are professors who are living a 
lie? Who is there I can trust? The man who is loudest in his profession 
may be exulting in secret and dreadful evil. He whom I think a saint 
may be the chief of sinners. Are there no true servants of Christ in 
Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Plenty,&quot; said Isobel.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But who are they? I had thought Richie Smail at the Greenshiel a saint, 
but am I wrong?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Na, na. Ye're safe wi' Richie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And yourself, Isobel?
</para>
<para>
Colour came into her strained face. &quot;I'm but a broken vessel, but neither 
my man nor me had ever trokin's wi' the Enemy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But there are those to your knowledge who have? I demand from 
you their names.
</para>
<para>
She pursed her lips.   &quot;Oh, Sir, I ken nocht. What suld a widow-woman, 
thrang a' the day in your service, ken o' the doings in Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nevertheless you know something. You have heard rumours.  Speak, 
I command you.
</para>
<para>
Her face was drawn with fright, but her mouth was obstinate. &quot;Wha am 
I to bring a railin' accusation against anybody, when I have nae 
certainty of knowledge?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are afraid.  In God's name, what do you fear? There is but the 
one fear, and that is the vengeance of the Almighty, and your silence 
puts you in jeopardy of His wrath.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Nevertheless there was no change in the woman's face.  David saw that 
her recalcitrance could not be broken.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then listen to me, Isobel Veitch.  I have had my eyes opened and I will 
not rest till I have rooted this evil thing from Woodilee.  I will 
search out and denounce every malefactor, though he were in my own 
Kirk Session. I will bring against them the terror of God and the arm 
of the human law. I will lay bare the evil mysteries of the Wood, 
though I have to hew down every tree with my own hand. In the strength 
of the Lord I will thresh this parish as corn is threshed, till I have 
separated the grain from the chaff and given the chaff to the burning. 
Make you your market for that, Isobel Veitch, and mind that he that 
is not for me is against me, and that in the day of God's wrath the 
slack hand and the silent tongue will not be forgiven.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The woman shivered and put a hand to her eyes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will ye hae your bite o' meat, sir?&quot; she quavered.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I will not break bread till God has given me clearness,&quot; he said sternly; 
and Isobel, who was in the habit of spinning out her talks with her 
master till she was driven out, slipped from the room like a discharged 
prisoner who fears that the Court may change its mind.
</para>
<para>
David rose next morning after a sleepless night, battered in body but 
with some peace of mind, and indeed a comfort which he scarcely dared 
to confess to himself.  He had now a straight course before him.  There 
was an evil thing in the place against which he had declared war, an 
omnipresent evil, for lie did not know who were the guilty. The thing 
was like the Wood itself, an amorphous shadow clouding the daylight.  
Gone were the divided counsels, the scruples of conscience. What 
mattered his doubts about the policy of the Kirk at large when here 
before his eyes was a conflict of God and Belial?
</para>
<para>
For the first time, too, he could let his mind dwell without scruples 
upon the girl in the green wood.  The little glen that separated the 
pines from the oaks and the hazels had become for him the frontier 
between darkness and light -- on the one side the innocency of the 
world which God had made, on the other the unclean haunts of devilry. . . 
</para>
<para>
And yet he had first met Katrine among the pines. To his horror of 
the works of darkness was added a bitter sense of sacrilege -- 
that obscene revelry should tread the very turf that her feet had trod.
</para>
<para>
That afternoon he set out for Chasehope. The matter should be without 
delay laid before his chief elder, and the monstrous suspicion which 
lurked at the back of his mind dispelled. He was aware that his face 
was a spectacle, but it should not be hidden, for it was a part of his 
testimony.  But at Chasehope there was no Ephraim Caird.  The slatternly 
wife who met him, old before her time, with a clan of ragged children 
at her heels, was profuse in regrets.  She dusted a settle for him, and 
offered new milk and a taste of her cheese, but all the time with an 
obvious discomfort.  To think that Ephraim should be away when the 
minister came up the hill! . . .  He had had to ride off that morn to 
Kirk Aller upon a matter of a bull that Johnnie Davidson had brought 
from Carlisle -- an English bull to improve the breed -- and he would 
not be home till the darkening. The woman was voluble and hearty, 
but it seemed to David that she protested too much. . . .  Was her 
husband all the while between the blankets in the press-bed?
</para>
<para>
On his way back, at the turn of the road from the kirkton, he encountered 
Daft Gibbie.  The idiot had throughout the winter been a satellite of 
the minister, and had had many a meal in the manse kitchen. When they 
met it was &quot;Eh, my bonny Mr Sempill,&quot; or &quot;my precious Mr David,&quot; and 
then an outpouring of grotesque but complimentary texts.  But now the 
first news he had of Gibbie was a small stone that whizzed past his ear, 
and when he turned he saw a threatening figure with a face twisted 
into a demoniac hate.  A second stone followed, very wide of the mark, 
and when David threatened pursuit, the idiot shuffled off, shouting 
filth over his shoulder.  A woman came out of a cottage, and said 
something to Gibbie which caused him to hold his peace and disappear 
into a kailyard.
</para>
<para>
. . .  But the woman did not look towards the minister, but hurried 
in again and closed the door. Was the whole parish, thought David, 
banded in a tacit conspiracy? Was this poor idiot one of the misbegotten 
things of the Wood?
</para>
<para>
The next Sabbath, which was the fifth of May, the kirk of Woodilee 
showed a full congregation. That day, save for infants in arms, there 
were few absentees.  Never had the place been more hushed and expectant.  
David preached from the text, &quot;Enter into the rock, and hide thee 
in the dust for fear of the Lord,&quot; and he delivered his soul with 
a freedom hitherto lacking in his care fully prepared discourses.  
Not the Boanerges of Bold could have outdone the fiery vigour with 
which he described how Israel went astray after forbidden gods and 
how the wrath of the Almighty smote her with death and exile.  
But when he came to the application, which should have been as a 
nail fastened in a sure place, he faltered. The faces below him, 
set, composed, awful in their decency, seemed like a stone wall 
against which he must beat with feeble hands.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have the sure knowledge,&quot; he said, &quot;that there are altars set up 
to Baal in this very parish, and that this little Israel of ours has 
its own groves where it worships the gods of the heathen-ay, the very 
devils from the Pit.  Be assured that I will riddle out this evil 
mystery and drag it into the light of day, and on the priests of Baal 
in Woodilee, be they libertines or professors, I will call down the 
terrors of the Most High.  I summon now in this place all poor deluded 
sinners to confession and repentance, for in the strength of the Lord 
I will go forward, and woe be to those that harden their hearts.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But his words seemed to be driven back upon him by the steely silence.  
He saw his elders -- the heavy white face of Chasehope, the long 
sanctimonious jowl of Peter Pennecuik, the impish mouth of Spotswood 
the miller now composed in an alien gravity, the dark sullenness of 
Mirehope -- they relished his vigour, but their eyes were hard as 
stones.  And the folk behind them, men and women, old and young, 
were attentively apathetic.  There was none of the crying and weeping 
and the spasms of conviction which had attended the fast-day service 
of the minister of Bold.  Were they a congregation of innocents to 
whom his summons had no application? Or were they so thirled to 
their evil-doing that his appeals were no more than an idle wind?
</para>
<para>
His Session congratulated him on his discourse. &quot;Ye had a gale on your 
spirit this day, Mr Sempill,&quot; said Chasehope.  &quot;Yon was a fine waft o' 
the Word ye gie'd us, and it's to be hoped that it will be blessed 
to many.&quot;
</para>
<para>
As David looked at the pale cheeks and the red hair of the man he had 
a sudden assurance.  It was a mild day, but Ephraim Caird wore a strip 
of flannel as if he were nursing a cold.  And was there not a 
discoloration of the skin around his fleshy jaw and a dark bruise 
below his left ear?
</para>
<para>
Next day David sought out Amos Ritchie, the smith.  He learned that 
the man was on a job at Nether Windyways, and he watched for him on 
the hill-road as he returned in the evening.  The big loose-limbed 
figure of Amos, striding down the twilit slopes with his bag of tools 
slung on his shoulder, was a pleasant sight to eyes that hungered for 
a friend.  For with the smith David had advanced far in friendliness 
since their partnership in the winter snowstorm.  The man was of a high
spirit and a complete honesty, and his professions were well behind 
his practice.  Rough of tongue and apt in a quarrel, he had a warmth 
of heart that did not fail even those he despised.  He was no purveyor 
of edifying speech, but the milk of human kindness ran strong in him.  
It was a saying in the village that there was &quot;mair comfort in an 
aith from Amos than a prayer from Peter Pennecuik.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But on this occasion the smith's straightforward friendliness seemed 
to have deserted him.  When David appeared before him he looked as 
if he would fain have avoided the meeting. His eyes were troubled, 
and he increased the pace of his walk when the minister fell into 
step beside him.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How's the wife?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Fine, sir.  Her kist's stronger, and I'm hopin' the simmer will pit 
colour intil her cheek.&quot;  But as he spoke his eyes were on a distant hill.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I want a word with you, Amos.  You and I are, I believe, true friends, 
and I can speak to you as to a brother.  I have become aware of a horrid 
evil in this parish.  There is that in the Wood which tempts men and 
women to abominations.  With these eyes of mine I saw it on Beltane's Eve.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was no answer.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You were in the kirk yesterday, Amos, and you heard my sermon.  
The decision is on Woodilee to choose whom they will serve.  You are 
my friend, and, apart from certain backslidings, a man of a Christian 
walk and conversation.  I summon you to my aid, and conjure you by 
Christ Who died for you, to tell me what you know of this great sin 
and who are the sinners?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Amos came to a standstill.  He laid down his tools, and looked the 
minister in the face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Let it alane, sir.  I rede ye, let it alane.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;In the name of God, what folly is this?&quot; David cried.  &quot;Are you, too, 
my own familiar friend, entangled in this wickedness?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man's face crimsoned.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Deil a haet!  Na, na, I never could abide thae trokin''s wi' the 
Wud.  But oh, Mr Sempill, ye're but a callant, and ye kenna the wecht 
o' the principalities and poo'ers that are against ye.  Hae patience, 
sir, and gang cannily.  Trust in the Word, whilk it is your duty to 
preach, to bring conviction o' sin in the Lord's am  gude time, for 
if ye're ettlin' [*] to use the arm o' flesh it will fail ye.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* intending.
</footnote>
<para>
It was the counsel which Isobel had given, and David's heart sank.  
What was it in Woodilee which made honest men silent and craven in 
the face of proved iniquity?
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man Amos,&quot; he cried, &quot;I never thought to get a coward's counsel from 
you.  Am I to reckon you among my enemies, and among God's enemies?  
I tell you I see my duty as clear before me as the Hill of Deer.  I 
must unveil this wickedness and blast its practisers into penitence 
or I fail in my first duty as the minister of this parish.  And from 
you, my friend, I get only silence and contumacy, and what is worse, 
the advice of a Laodicean.  Alas! that you who have fought stoutly 
in your country's battles should be such a poor soldier in God's 
battles.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was no answer.  The two had resumed their walk, and the smith 
strode at a pace which was almost a run, his eyes steadily averted 
from his companion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;This is my last word to you, Amos,&quot; said David, as they reached the 
turn where the loan ran to the manse.  &quot;Wednesday-the day after the 
morn -- is the second Beltane, and I fear that that night there will 
be further evil in the Wood.  I will go there and outface the Devil, 
but the flesh is weak, and I am one against many, and I would fain 
have a friend. Will you not bear me company?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The smith stopped again.  &quot;Deil hae me if I gang near the Wud! Na, na, 
I'll no pit my heid intil ony sic wull-cat's hole.  And, Mr Sempill, 
be you guidit by an aulder man and bide at hame.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are afraid!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay.  I'm feared -- but mair for you than for mysel'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You're like the men of Israel that failed Gideon at the waterside,&quot; 
David cried angrily as he turned away.
</para>
<para>
The next two days were spent by the minister in a strange restlessness.  
He walked each afternoon some violent miles on the hilltops, but for the 
rest he stayed in the manse, principally in his study. Isobel believed 
him to be at prayer, and indeed he prayed long and fervently, but he 
was also busied about other things.  Among his belongings was a small-sword, 
for he had won some skill of fence in Edinburgh, and this he had out 
and saw to its point and edge.  Also he read much in books which were 
not divinity, for he felt himself a soldier, and would brace his spirit 
with martial tales. With Isobel he exchanged no word save commonplaces, 
and the old woman, who had the air of a scolded child, showed no desire 
to talk.  His meals were set before him in silence, and silently the 
table was cleared. Amos Ritchie came to the manse on some small 
repairing job, and he too seemed to be anxious to get his work done 
and leave.  David saw him arrive as he set out for a walk, and when 
he returned, the shoulders of the smith were disappearing past the 
stable end.
</para>
<para>
Wednesday evening came, an evening of mellow light and a quiet sunset, 
and after his early supper David retired to his study to prepare 
himself for his task.  He had already written out an account of what 
he had seen in the Wood and of what he proposed to do, and this he 
signed and directed under cover to Mr Fordyce at Cauldshaw.  Whatever 
mischance befell him, he had left a record.  He had also written a 
letter to his father, setting forth what, in the event of his death, 
was to be the destination of his worldly goods. Then on his knees he 
remained for a while in prayer.
</para>
<para>
The clock struck nine, and he arose to begin his journey, strapping 
the sword to his middle, and taking also a great stick which the 
shepherd of the Greenshiel had made for him.  The moon would rise 
late and there was ample time.
</para>
<para>
But he found that the door of his study would not open. It had no 
lock, and had hung on a light hasp, but now it seemed to have bolts 
and bars.  It was a massive thing of oak, and when he shook it it 
did not yield.
</para>
<para>
He shouted for Isobel, but there was no reply. Then he assaulted it 
furiously with knees and feet and shoulder, but it did not give.  
There was no hope from the window, which was a small square through 
which a child could not have crept.
</para>
<para>
Further attacks on the door followed, and futile shouting.  By the time 
the late light had faded from the little window David had acknowledged 
the fact that he was imprisoned and his first fury had ebbed from sheer 
bodily fatigue.  But the clock had struck one before he attempted to 
make a bed on the floor, with for pillow a bag of chaff which Isobel 
had placed there for a Winter footstool, and the dawn was in the 
eastern sky before he slept.
</para>
<para>
He was awakened by Isobel in the doorway.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peety on us,&quot; she wailed, &quot;that sic a thing suld hae come to this 
hoose!  Hae ye spent the nicht in this cauld chamber and no in your 
bed? The wyte's [*] on me, for I got Amos Ritchie yestereen to put 
a bar on the door, for there's walth of guid books here and I wad 
like to steek the place when ye're awa' to the hills and me maybe 
in the kitchen. I maun hae steekit it to see if it wad wark, no 
kennin' ye were in inside. And syne I gaed doun to my gude-brither's 
to speir after his bairn, and I was late in getting back, and, thinks 
I, the minister will be in his bed and I'll awa' to mine.  Puir man, 
ye'll be as stiff as a wand, and ye'll maybe hae got your death o' 
cauld.  . .  See and I'll get ye a het drink, and your parritch's 
on the boil. . . .  Wae's me that I didn' tak' a thocht . . . &quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* blame.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Silence, woman, and do not cumber your soul with lies.&quot;  David's 
white face as he strode from the room did more than his words to 
cut short Isobel's laments.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter VIII</chapnum>
<title>The Second Blast</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>ON</emph> the following Sabbath the minister's text was, &quot;When the light 
within you is darkness, how great is that darkness!&quot; This time 
there was no faltering in the application. The congregation, men and 
women, were arraigned at the bar as sinners by deed or by connivance, 
and he had an audience hushed not in the ordinary Sabbath decorum, 
but in a fearful apprehension. Every moment he seemed to be about 
to name the sinner, and if he did not single out persons he made it 
blindingly clear that it was not for lack of knowledge. Never had he 
preached with greater freedom, never had passion so trembled in each 
sentence. Words seemed to be given him, stinging, unforgettable words 
that must flay the souls of the guilty.  &quot;Blinded self-deceivers,&quot; 
he cried, &quot;you think you can tamper with devilry and yet keep your 
interest in Christ. You are set up with covenants, public and private, 
but I tell you that your covenant is with Death and Hell. The man who 
believes he is elected into salvation, and thinks that thereby he has 
liberty to transgress and that his transgressions will be forgiven 
him, has sinned against the Holy Ghost-that sin for which there is no 
forgiveness.&quot; He declared that till there was a general confession and 
repentance there would be no Communion in the parish of Woodilee, for 
those who sat down at the Lord's Table would be eating and drinking 
damnation to themselves. . . . 
But at the end he broke down. With tears in his eyes and a sob in his 
voice he besought a people whom he loved to abase themselves before 
the Mercy Seat. &quot;You poor folk,&quot; he cried, &quot;with your little dark 
day of life, with your few years of toil and cold and hunger before 
the grave, what have you if you have not Christ?&quot; He was moved with an 
ecstasy of pity, and told them, like the Apostle, that if he could 
but save their souls, he was willing that his own should be cast away.
</para>
<para>
Not the oldest remembered such a sermon in the kirk of Woodilee, and 
the fame of it was soon to go abroad in the countryside. The place 
emptied in a strange silence, as if the congregation went on tip-toe, 
and men and women did not look at each other till they were outside 
the kirkyard gates. The elders did not await the minister in the 
session-house, and as David walked the hundred yards to the manse he 
saw what looked like the back of Peter Pennecuik, crouching behind a 
turf dyke to avoid a meeting.
</para>
<para>
These were days of loneliness and misery for the minister of Woodilee.  
He saw himself solitary among enemies, for even those whom he thought 
his friends had failed him. It was clear that Amos Ritchie had 
conspired with Isobel to imprison him in his study on the eve of 
the second Beltane, and though their motive was doubtless affection 
it but emphasised the hopelessness of his task. He had to bring 
conviction of sin into a parish where even the innocent were ready 
to cumber his arm. These honest creatures feared for him -- what?  
Anger would choke him at the thought of such contempt for his sacred 
mission, and then awe would take its place, awe at the immensity 
of the evil with which he fought. &quot;Principalities and powers,&quot; 
Amos had said -- yes, the Powers of the Air and the Principalities 
of Darkness. He had no doubt that the Devil and his myrmidons were 
present in the Wood in bodily form, mingling with the worshippers, 
and that the tongues which he had heard were in very truth mutterings 
of the lost.  There were times when ordinary human fear loosened his 
knees, and he longed to flee from the parish as from a place accursed.  
But his courage would return, and his faith, for he knew that the 
armies of Heaven were on his side, and wrath would cast out fear, 
wrath and horror at the seducers of his flock. Nevertheless in 
these days his nerves were frayed, he lay awake of nights listening 
anxiously for noises without, and he would awake suddenly in the 
sweat of a nameless terror.
</para>
<para>
But his chief burden was that he did not know how to shape his course. 
The pulpit rang with his denunciations, but there was no response; 
no stricken Nicodemus came to him by night.  On the roads and at 
the house-doors people avoided his eyes. There were no more stones 
from Daft Gibbie -- indeed Gibbie had resumed his fawning friendliness
-- but none waited to speak a word with him. Isobel had recovered her 
cheerfulness, and sought to atone for past misconduct by an assiduous 
attention to his comforts, but. Amos Ritchie shunned him. And the 
children, too, who had been his chief allies. Perhaps their parents 
had warned them, for a group would scatter when he came near, and 
once when, coming up behind him, he laid a kindly hand on a boy's 
head, the child burst into tears and fled. What was the <ital>fama</ital> of 
the minister which had been put about in Woodilee?
</para>
<para>
The worst of it was that he could contrive no plan of campaign. 
Evidence which was overwhelming to his own mind would not convince 
the Presbytery or the Sheriff. He could not bring a reasoned charge 
against any man or woman in the parish. As the days passed he began 
to sort out his flock in his mind as the guilty and the abettors.  
Some were innocent enough, save for the sin of apathy; but others 
he could believe to have shared in the midnight debauches-heavy-browed 
sensual youths, women with shifty eyes, girls high-coloured and 
over-blown, whose sidelong glances seemed to hint at secrets, old 
wives, too, whose wild laughter he heard at cottage doors. But of 
one, his first certainty was giving way to doubt. Ephraim Caird's 
white face had got a wholesome tan from the summer sun, and he alone 
in the parish seemed to seek out the minister.  He gave him a cheerful 
greeting when they met, spoke wisely of parish matters, had a word of 
humble commendation for the Sabbath discourses.  &quot;It's gaun to be a 
braw year for the aits,&quot; he said, &quot;gin the weather hauds, and the lambs 
are the best I've yet seen on Chasehope hill. Let us hope, sir, that 
the guid seed ye've sown will come to as bountiful a hairvest.&quot; The 
words were so simply spoken that they seemed no hypocrisy.
</para>
<para>
A plan of campaign! On that David could get no clearness, and the 
anxiety was with him at bed and board.  He shrank from confessing 
himself to his brother-ministers, for what could they do to help him? 
Kirk Aller would pooh-pooh the whole thing, since Woodilee had been 
so forward in signing the Covenant.  Bold would no doubt believe, but 
his remedy would be only a stiffer draught of doctrine. Even Mr Fordyce 
at Cauldshaw seemed a broken reed, for Mr Fordyce was an ailing saint, 
and this task was for the church militant. No, he must fight his battles 
alone, and trust to God to send him allies. He wanted men of violence, 
who would fight not with words but with deeds, Israelitish prophets who 
with their own hands cut down groves and uprooted altars and hewed 
Agag in pieces. And where would he find them in a countryside where 
the good were timid as sheep and their pastors like loud voices in a fog?
</para>
<para>
June was a month of hot suns and clear skies, when the hills were 
bone-dry and the deepest flowemoss could be safely passed. It was 
weather for the high tops, and one afternoon David, walking off his 
restlessness on the Rood uplands, stumbled unexpectedly on a friend. 
For at the head of the glen where the drove-road crosses from Clyde 
to Aller, he fell in with the farmer of Reiverslaw leading his 
horse up a steep patch of screes.
</para>
<para>
This man, Andrew Shillinglaw, was something of a mystery both to 
parish and. minister. He was a long lean fellow of some forty years, 
black-haired, black-bearded, whose sullen face was redeemed by a 
humorous mouth, so that the impression was of a genial ferocity.  
He was reputed the most skilful farmer in the place, and some held 
him a rival in worldly wealth to the miller, but beyond the fact that 
he had in Reiverslaw the best of the hill farms, there was no clue 
to his prosperity. He had the only good riding-horse in Woodilee 
and was a notable figure on the roads, for he travelled the country 
like a packman. For weeks on end he would be away from home, and he 
was heard of in Galloway and the west and as far south as the Border, 
so that speculation about his doings became a favourite pastime among 
his neighbours. He neither sold nor bought in the parish, and he kept 
his own counsel, but his profession was clear enough had there been 
eyes to see. For he was dealer and middleman as well as farmer, and 
in a day when stock and produce scarcely moved beyond parish bounds, 
he sold and bought in outlying markets.  In a district of home-keepers 
he was the sole traveller.
</para>
<para>
Few liked him, for there was always an undertone of satire in his 
speech. But all feared him, for his temper was on a hair-trigger.  
Drink made him quarrelsome, and the spence at Lucky Weir's had seen 
some ugly business, since with him blow followed fast on word. Three 
years before he had buried his wife, there were no children, and he 
lived at Reiverslaw with an aged cousin for housekeeper, who was half 
blind and wholly deaf.  His attendance at the kirk was far from 
exemplary; in winter there were the drifts and the full bogs to detain 
him and in summer he was as often as not on his travels. The Session, 
who did not love him, had talked of citing him to appear before them, 
but in the end they seemed to shrink from belling so formidable a cat.
</para>
<para>
At the head of the little pass, which in that country is called a 
&quot;slack,&quot; he halted and let David approach him.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A guid day to ye, sir,&quot; he cried. &quot;We'll let Bess get her wind, for 
it's a larig gait frae Crawford-john. I rade ower yestereen to see the 
sma' Cumberland sheep that the Lowther herds are trying on yon hills. 
I hae nae great broo o' them. They'll maybe dae on yon green braes 
where the bite is short, but they're nae use for a heather country. . . . 
Sit ye doun, sir. What brings ye sae far ower the tops? Ye werena 
ettlin' to gie me a ca in at Reiverslaw?&quot;
</para>
<para>
David gladly stretched himself on the bent beside him. The man seemed 
willing to talk, and of late he had had little speech with his fellows.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I came here for the caller air,&quot; he said, &quot;and to drive ill humours 
from body and mind. There are whiles when I cannot draw breath 
in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay,&quot; said the man.  &quot;Ay!  Just so.&quot;  He pursed his lips and 
looked at the minister under halfshut eyes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Were you born in this parish?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Na, na. Far frae that. I'm but an incomer, though I've had the 
tack o' Reiverslaw for a dizzen years. My father, honest man, was 
frae the Glenkens, and my mither cam, frae the Cairn side.  I was 
born at a bit they ca Dunscore, but I was a stirrin' lad in my young 
days and I've traivelled the feck o' the Lawlands, frae the Forth 
to the Solway. But now I've got my hinderlands doun in Woodilee, 
and it's like I'll lay my banes here.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man spoke in a different voice from the people of the place, and 
to David he seemed as one detached from the countryside, sharing 
neither its interests nor affections.  As he looked at him, sprawling 
in the heather bush with one foot on his horse's bridle, he had a 
sense of something assured and resolute and not unfriendly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye're an incomer like mysel', sir,&quot; Reiverslaw said after a pause. 
&quot;What think ye o' Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I think that the Devil has chosen this miserable parish for his own.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay. . . . Well, I wadna say ye were wrang. I jaloused [*] frae your last 
discourse that ye were perplexed wi' the Enemy. And they tell me that 
ye've stirred up an unco byke against ye.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* guessed.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Are you one of them?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No me. If there's fechtin' to be done, I'm on your side. I aye likit 
a bauld man, and it's a question, sir, if ye ken yoursel' how bauld 
ye are when ye offer to drive the Devil frae Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David had got to his feet, for these were the first words of sympathy 
he had had.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Andrew Shillinglaw, I command you to tell me if you have kept 
yourself clean from this mystery of evil which scourges the parish.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man still sprawled on the ground, and the face he turned to the 
minister was twisted in a grim humour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay. I'll swear ony a]ith ye like. I'll no deny my backslidin's, and, 
as ye may ken, my walk and conversation's no to boast o'. But as sure 
as God made me, I wad burn off my richt hand in the fire afore I wad 
file mysel' wi' the Babylonish abominations o' the Wud.  I whiles drink 
a stoup ower muckle, and I whiles gie a maur straik than I ettle when my 
bluid's liet, but these are honest stumblin's whilk I hope the Lord will 
forgie.  But for yon -- &quot; and he spat viciously.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then, if you are yourself clean from this evil, tell me what you know 
of it and who are its chief professors?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That's easy speirin',[*] but ill to answer. How suld I ken the covens 
that rampage in the Wud? I bide cheek by jowl wi' the muckle black 
thing, and often I wish it was a field o' strae in a dry back-end so 
that I could set fire to it and see it burn frae Reiverslaw to 
Windyways and frae Woodilee to the Aller side. But I've never entered 
the place in mirk or licht, for my wark's wi' sheep and the honest 
beasts will no gang near it.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* asking.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;But you must have heard . . . . &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I've heard nocht. I have maybe guessed, but it's no like I wad 
hear a cheep. I never gang near the clachan except to kirk or 
to Lucky Weir's, and the Woodilee folk are pawky bodies even when 
they're fou, and ony way I'm nae clatter-vengeance to be clypin' 
wi' auld wives at the roadside.  But I've my am notion o' what's 
gaun on, and I can tell ye, sir, it's gaun on in mony anither godly 
parochine in this kingdom o' Scotland, and it's been gaun on for
hundreds o' years, long afore John Knox dang doun the Pape. But it's 
gotten a braw new tack in these days o' reformed and covenantit kirks. 
What do your Presbytries and Assemblies or your godly ministers ken 
o' the things that are done in the mirk? . . . What do they ken o' 
the corps in the kirkyairds buried o' their am wull wi' their faces 
downwards? . . . They set up what they ca' their discipline and they 
lowse the terrors o' Hell on sma' fauts like an aith, or profane talk 
on the Sabbath, or giem' the kirk the go-by, and they hale to the 
cutty-stool ilka lass that's ower kind to her jo. And what's the upshot? 
They drive the folk to their auld ways and turn them intil hypocrites 
as weel as sinners.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hush, man! &quot; said the scandalised David. &quot;That is impious talk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's true a' the same, though it's maybe no for a minister's lugs. 
The Kirk is set against witchcraft and every wee while a daft auld 
wife is brunt. But, God help us, that's but the froth on the pat. Na, 
na, Mr Sempill.  If you're lookin' to get to grips wi' the Adversary, 
it's no the feckless camsteery lad ye maun seek that likes a randan, 
or the bit lassie that's ower fond to wait for the Kirk's blessin', 
or the grannie that swears she rade to France on a kail-runt.  It's 
the dacent body that sits and granes aneath the pu'pit and the fosy 
professor that wags his pow and deplores the wickedness o' the land. -- 
Yon's the true warlocks. There's saunts in Scotland, the Lord kens 
and I ken mysel', but there's some that hae the name o' saunts that 
wad make the Devil spew.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw had risen, and in his face was such a flame of fierce 
honesty that David's heart kindled. He had found an ally.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Give me names,&quot; he cried. '' I will denounce the sinner, though he were 
one of my own elders.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I speak nae names.  I have nae proof.  But ye've seen yoursel'.  They 
tell me ye broke in on the Coven at their wark.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I had but a glinsk of them, before they beat the senses out of me. 
But I intend to go back to the Wood, and this time I shall not fail.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay. Ye've a stout heart, Mr Sempill.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But I must have help. Out of the mouths of witnesses I must establish 
the truth, and the innocent in Woodilee are very fearful. I have 
nowhere to look but to you. Will you come with me when I return 
to the Wood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll no say that, for there's maybe better ways o' guidin' it. But 
this I will say -- I'll stand by ye; for may the Deil flee awa' wi' me 
or I see a guid man beat. There's my hand on't. . . . And now I maun be 
takin' the road again. Come na near the Reiverslaw, sir, for that would 
set the bodies talkin'. If ye want word wi' me, tell Richie Smail 
at the Greenshiel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The knowledge that he had found a friend lightened David's heavy 
preoccupation of mind; Athanasius now was not alone against the world, 
and his path was not towards martyrdom but to victory. He walked with 
a more assured step and turned a bolder face to the furtive hostility 
of the parish. When he met Amos Ritchie he looked on him not in reproach 
but in defiance. His sermons were now less appeals than challenges, 
as of one whose course was proclaimed and whose loins were girded.
</para>
<para>
To his consternation he found that he now sat very loose in his devotion 
to the Kirk. The profession of religion was not the same thing as 
godliness, and he was coming to doubt whether the insistence upon 
minute conformities of outward conduct and the hair-splitting doctrines 
were not devices of Satan to entangle souls. The phrases of piety, 
unctuously delivered, made him shudder as at a blasphemy. The fact 
that his only supporter was one looked askance at by strict professors 
confirmed his shrinking. Had not Christ set the publican and the 
sinner above the Pharisee?
</para>
<para>
One consequence of his new mood was that his thoughts turned again 
to the girl in Paradise. In his season of desolation he had not dared 
to think of her; she belonged to a world of light and had no part 
in his perplexities. To let her image fill his memory seemed sacrilege, 
when that memory held so many foul shadows. But as the skies cleared 
for him her figure appeared again in the sunlight and he did not banish 
it, for it was she who was the extreme opposite of the horror of the Wood -- 
she and her bright domain of oaks and hazels. He would go again to 
Paradise for his soul's comfort.
</para>
<para>
He chose a day when he was certain she would be there.  There was a 
week of fiery weather-moist heat and heavy skies and flying thunderstorms, 
and after it came a spell of long bright days, when the sunshine 
had a dry tonic in it and the afternoons were mellow and golden. 
On one such afternoon he crossed the Hill of Deer and entered the 
glen which divided the pines from the hazels.
</para>
<para>
Midsummer had changed the place. The burnside turf was all thyme 
and eyebright and milkwort, with the stars of the grass of 
Parnassus in the wet places. The water was clear and small, and
the cascades fell in a tinkling silver. He had no doubts as to his 
road now. Paradise was among the hazels, but one could find it only 
by descending the glen to where the pines of the Wood began and 
then turning to the right towards the Greenshiel.
</para>
<para>
Presently the pines in a sombre regiment rose on the steep to the 
left. He looked at the beginning of the Wood with an awe which had 
now no fear in it. The place was hateful, but it could not daunt him.  
It was the battleground to which he was called. . . . On the edge of 
trees was a great mass of dark foxgloves, the colour of blood, and 
they seemed to make a blood-trail from the sunlight into the gloom.
</para>
<para>
He turned up the right bank, and through hazel copses and glades 
breast-high with bracken he made his way as if by instinct. He found 
the shallow cup lined with birches and the blossoming rowans, and 
as he brushed through the covert he saw the girl sitting on the 
greensward by the well.
</para>
<para>
Motionless he watched her for a little, while his heart played strange 
pranks. She had a basket beside her full of flowers, and she was 
reading in a book. . . . She laid down the book, and shook her curls 
and dabbled her fingers in the water.  She sang as she dabbled, low 
and clear in snatches, a song which he was to remember to his dying-day:
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's comfort for the comfortless, 
And honey for the bee,
And there's none for me but you, my love, 
And there's none for you but me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She crooned the verse twice, broke off to watch a ring-ouzel, 
and then sang again:
</para>
<song><verse><line>
&quot;It's love for love that I have got, </line><line>
And love for love again,</line><line>
So turn your high horse heid about </line><line>
And we will ride for hame, my love, </line><line>
And we will ride for hame.&quot;
</line></verse></song>
<para>
He would fain have lingered and watched her, but he felt like an 
eavesdropper on her privacy.  So, &quot;Mistress Katrine,&quot; he cried softly, 
and &quot; Mistress Katrine&quot; a second time.
</para>
<para>
She sprang to the alert like a bird.  Her face, when she saw him, 
showed no welcome.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I give you good-day, sir,&quot; she said.  &quot;Have you maybe lost your road?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am seeking Paradise,&quot; he replied.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is the quest of all mortals, they tell me. But the ministers say 
it is not to be found on earth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was seeking the earthly one to which you yourself first led me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You entered then by my invitation, but I do not think I bade you 
come again.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then I beg for admission, mistress, for indeed I have sore need 
of Paradise.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She looked at him curiously. &quot;You look older -- atid sadder. I have not been 
to your kirk, but they tell me that you are scorching the souls of your 
folk with your terrors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Would to God I could scorch them into salvation! . . .  I have been in 
dire straits, Mistress Katrine. For I came again to find Paradise and 
I found it not, but stumbled into Hell.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The girl looked at him with compassionate eyes. &quot;You may sit down 
in Paradise,&quot; she said. &quot;I permit you. And I will give you some of my 
wild strawberries. Tell me what has troubled you?&quot;
</para>
<para>
He told her of the doings of Beltane Eve, stumblingly, with many 
omissions. He told her of his strife with his parishioners, of his 
loneliness, of the mission to which he was vowed. &quot;I am resolved,&quot; 
he said, &quot;that though I go on alone I will not fail in courage. 
Your Montrose''s comfort is mine -- that the arm of the Lord is 
not shortened.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The girl brooded.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you come here to find me?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I had a conviction that you would be in Paradise. This is no tale 
for a maid's ear, but I came here to warn you, Mistress.  The long 
glen that runs down to the Rood Mill is a frontier-line, which if you 
pass you are in the land of darkness. I found you first among the pines, 
and I beseech you go not again among them, though it were at high 
noon, for yon Wood is accursed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She nodded. &quot;I felt it too. When Spring was passing I felt a gloom come 
over me as I walked there, and one day a terror seized me and I ran and 
ran till I was among the hazels.  I cannot bear even to be in sight of 
the dark trees. You say that there is witchcraft there.&quot;  She lowered 
her voice and her eyes were solemn.  &quot;What is this witchcraft?&quot;
</para>
<para>
I cannot tell, save that it is the nethermost works of darkness and that 
it has seduced the hearts of my unhappy people. . . .  God help me, but 
I have seen with my eyes what I cannot forget. . . . There is no smooth 
ministry for me, for now I am a soldier of Christ and must be fighting 
till I have got the victory.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you are alone?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have one who will stand by me.&quot; And he told her of Reiverslaw.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nay, you have another,&quot; she cried. &quot;You have me for a friend, and you 
have this greenwood for a sanctuary. If I cannot fight by your side, 
you will know that I am here and that I am wishing you well. See, I 
make you free of Paradise. It is yours now, as well as mine.&quot; She 
held out her hand.
</para>
<para>
He took off his hat.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You were singing,&quot; he said, &quot;and your song was true, for here's 'comfort 
for the comfortless.' You have put steel into my bones, Mistress Katrine. 
If I can come here and speak with you at times, it will be like the 
water beside the gate of Bethlehem to King David. . . . I will know 
when you are here without your sending me word.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then there is witchcraft in the greenwood,&quot; she said, smiling gravely, 
&quot;for I too knew that you were coming to-day before you came.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter IX</chapnum>
<title>Before Lammas</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>ONE</emph> day in July David saddled his horse and rode to Kirk Aller for 
a Presbytery meeting. He found a bewildered brotherhood. The usual 
&quot;exercises were omitted, there was no prelection on a set doctrinal 
theme for the benefit of the younger ministers, the sittings in the 
kirk were occupied mainly with prayers for a humbled Sion and a 
distracted country, and the dinner thereafter in the Cross Keys was 
not notable for good-fellowship.  But it was a crowded gathering, and 
among the lay members in the kirk was Ephraim Caird.
</para>
<para>
At the meal Mr Mungo Muirhead, primed with letters from Edinburgh, gave 
ill news of the war in the North. Montrose the recusant continued to 
win battles and was even now marching southward with his savage 
Irishry to strike at the citadel. &quot;What for does Davie Leslie no 
hasten,&quot; he cried, &quot;and what profits it to have a covenanted State 
and a purified Kirk if a mailed Amalekite can hunt our sodgers from Dan 
to Beersheba? I tell you, sirs, this war which has hitherto been fought 
among Hieland glens will soon be at our am doorcheeks, and our puir folk 
will be called to testify not with voice and word and the scart of a 
pen, but with sufferings and revilings and bloody murderings.  Forth and 
Aller may yet run red, and the hand of death be on the Lowdon fields. 
Are we prepared, I ask, and I ask it yet again? Whatna gifts will we 
bring to the altar in the coming day of sacrifice?&quot;
</para>
<para>
His fears had given dignity to the minister of Kirk Aller. The man was 
a fighter, for his mouth shut tight and there was a spark of fire in 
his heavy eyes. Nor was Mr Proudfoot of Bold less ready for the fray. 
He had got himself a pair of great boots, and looked a very Ironside 
as he expanded his big chest and groaned assent to his leader's warning.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Let us see that there is no Canaanitish thing in our midst,&quot; Mr 
Proudfoot cried, &quot;for the purge of the Lord is nigh. And let Israel 
dwell in unity, for a house divided shall not stand. These are the 
twin counsels for this day of wrath, a pure cause and a brotherly 
people. These, I say, are the dams with which to stem the tide of 
the heathen's rage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And that's a word in season for you, Mr Sempill,&quot; said Mr Muirhead.  
&quot; I hear ye've set the haul parish of Woodilee by the lugs with wanton
accusations. You'll admit none to the Table, says you, till there is 
public confession of some unkenned iniquity. I applaud zeal in a 
young minister, but it seems you've fair got your leg ower the trams, 
and the serious folk of Woodilee are troubled to ken what ye mean. 
Have a care, Mr Sempill, lest this zeal of yours be but human 
impatience. This is no time to sow confusion among God's people.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The minister of Kirk Aller had lost his air of rough good-humour. 
It was a hard face and an inquisitorial eye that he bent on David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I take my stand on the first of Mr Proudfoot's counsels,&quot; said the 
latter. &quot; If the day of trial is coming, our cause must he pure, 
and there must be no Canaanitish thing in our midst.  When I am 
clear about the sins of Woodilee, the Presbytery will have further 
news of me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The young man's speech was too assured to please Mr Muirhead.  He 
drew down his eyebrows till they formed a straight line bisecting 
his huge expanse of face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have a care, have a care, I counsel you,&quot; he said crossly. &quot;I can 
tell you that there's many an auld exercised professor in Woodilee 
that's sore concerned about your doings.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Proudfoot added his reproof. &quot;When I mind on the precious work I 
witnessed in that very parish in the month of March, I will not 
believe that the Devil has got the master hand. Examine yourself, 
I rede you, Mr Sempill, and see if the beam be not in your own eye.
</para>
<para>
David rode away from Kirk Aller in the company of Mr Fordyce of 
Cauldshaw, but they had not ridden a mile before there was a clatter 
of hoofs behind them and the minister of Bold joined himself to 
their company. His beast was fractious, having had an unaccustomed 
feed of oats in the Cross Keys stable, and Mr Proudfoot, since he 
was an awkward horseman, had to spend much of his energy in keeping 
it to the road. But what time he could spare from this task he 
devoted to catechising David, and for the three miles during which 
their course lay together his tongue never stopped.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's an ill fama of you gone abroad, Mr Sempill, and it is my duty 
as your elder in the Lord's service to satisfy myself thereanent.  It 
is reported that you pervert the doctrine of election into grace, 
maintaining that this blessed estate may be forfeit by a failure in 
good works, as if the filthy rags of man's righteousness were mair 
than the bite of a flea in face of the eternal purposes of God.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I say that a man who believes that his redemption through Christ 
gives him a licence to sin is more doubly damned than if he had never 
had a glimpse of grace.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But ye maun distinguish. The point is far finer than that, sir.  
I will construe your words, for there is an interpretation of them 
which is rank heresy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The task of construing and distinguishing did not fare well, for every 
few minutes the teeth of Mr Proudfoot were shaken in his head by his 
horse's vagaries.  He had just reached a point of inordinate subtlety, 
when the track to Bold branched off, and his animal, recognising 
at last the road home, darted down it at a rough gallop.  The last 
seen of the minister of Bold was a massive figure swaying like a ship 
in a gale, and still, if one might trust the echoes the wind brought 
back, distinguishing and construing.
</para>
<para>
Even Mr Fordyce's grave face smiled as he watched the fleeing 
Boanerges.
</para>
<para>
&quot;He is a wilful man, and he has a wilful beast. But what is this rumour 
in the countryside, Mr David?  I fear that you are finding Woodilee 
a dour rig to plough.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What do they say in Cauldshaw?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have been little about of late, for these last weeks I've been sore 
troubled with my bowels.  I'm like the Psalmist-the Lord trieth my 
reins in the night watches-and I've never made out my visit to you to 
have a read of Cardanus.  But I cannot but hear orra bits of news 
from the next parish, and the speak in the countryside is that you 
have uncovered the nakedness of Woodilee and preach siccan sermons 
that the een of the folk turn inward in their heads. What's the truth 
of it, Mr David? My heart yearns over you as if you were my own 
mother's son.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have uncovered a great wickedness-but not yet all.  I wait and watch, 
and when I have fuller knowledge I will know better how to act.  You 
told me the first day we met that Woodilee had an ill reputation, and, 
sorrow on me! I have proved the justice of your words.  And I greatly 
fear that it is the loudest professors that are deepest in the mire.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man, David, that is a grievous business.  Is it the Wood?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is the Wood, and the blackest kind of witchcraft.  Some old 
devilry of the heathen has lingered in that place, and the soul 
of my miserable parish is thirled to it.  You will not find in 
Scotland a doucer bit, for there are no public sins and shortcomings.  
Man, there's times when Woodilee seems as quiet and dead as a kirkyard.  
But there's a mad life in its members, and at certain seasons it 
finds vent. In the deeps of night and in the heart of the Wood there 
are things done of which it is shameful even to speak.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What witness have you?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My own eyes.  I stumbled upon one of their hellish Sabbaths.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;God be kind to us! I have heard tell of siccan things and I have read 
of them in old books, but I never experienced them.  I'm positive they're 
not in Cauldshaw, for the place is ower bare and bright and the wind 
blows ower clean on our braes. There's no cover for the abominations 
which must be done in darkness.  But I have aye had a scunner of yon 
Wood.   .  It's a queer thing the heart of man, Mr David, and there's 
that in my own that whiles terrifies me.  The work of redemption is 
done in an instant, but the job of regeneration is a lifetime's; and 
the holiest saint on his death-bed is but a bag of rottenness compared 
to the purity to which he shall yet attain.  And at times I'm tempted 
to think that our way and the Kirk's way is not God's way, for we're 
apt to treat the natural man as altogether corrupt, and put him under 
over-strict pains and penalties, whereas there's matter in him that 
might be shaped to the purposes of grace.  If there's original sin, 
there's likewise original innocence. When I hear the lassie Katrine 
Yester singing about the door at Calidon, I have an assurance of 
God's goodness as sharp as I ever got in prayer.  If you ban this 
innocent joy it will curdle and sour, and the end will be sin.  
If young life may not caper on a Spring morn to the glory of God, 
it will dance in the mirk wood to the Devil's piping.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Fordyce stopped short with a rueful face. &quot;That's for your own ear, 
Mr David.  If the bruit of what I have said came to the manse of Bold, 
Mr Ebenezer would be for delating me to the Presbytery.  But if it's 
not orthodox it's good sense.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I doubt orthodoxy is no salve against sin,&quot; said David.  &quot;The devils, 
it is written, believe and tremble, and it's my surmise that the leader 
of the witches' Coven in Woodilee could stand his ground with Bold 
himself on matters of doctrine.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have formidable foes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have a whole parish, for even those who are free of guilt are 
too timid to lift a hand.  Likewise I have my Kirk Session.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Fordyce exclaimed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And it looks like I will have the Presbytery. I'm in ill odour with 
Mr. Muirhead for dividing Israel and to Mr. Proudfoot I smack of heresy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You've aye gotten me on your side,&quot; said Mr. Fordyce.  &quot;No that I'm 
much of a fighter, for my bowels melt and my speech sticks in my throat 
and I sit like a dumb ox, and syne mourn on my bed in the night watches 
that I have been found wanting.  But my heart is with you, Mr. David, 
and what voice my infirmities permit me, and you'll be never out of 
my prayers.  . .  Come to Cauldshaw whenever ye long for speech with 
a friend.  I can aye give you sympathy if I canna give you counsel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But when David three days later turned his horse in the direction of 
Cauldshaw, it was not to the manse he went but to the tower of Calidon. 
For Katrine Yester had become for him the only light on his path.  
She personified the cause for which he fought, the fair world that 
stood in contrast to the obscene shades, and since their last meeting in
Paradise she was no loriger a flitting wood-nymph, but a woman of flesh 
and blood and heart.  He longed to see her in the house where she 
dwelt and among her own people.
</para>
<para>
But there was no Katrine in Calidon that afternoon, for she had gone 
to the greenwood.  It was a still day of July in which no cloud 
tempered the heat of the sun, but the great upper chamber in the 
tower was cool and dusky.  He asked for Mistress Saintserf and was 
received by that grim lady in state, for she kept him waiting while 
she donned a new toy and kerchief for the occasion.  She spoke a 
Scots as broad as any shepherd's wife, but the sharp vowels of 
Edinburgh took the place of the softer Border tones.  Large and 
gaunt and domineering, her high-nosed face and prim mouth were 
mellowed by an audacious humour.  Katrine had clearly never spoken 
of him (at which he was glad), but she knew him by repute and by 
his connection with the miller of the Roodfoot.  She entertained him 
with shortcake of her own baking and elder wine of her own brewing, 
and her tone mingled the deference of a good woman towards a 
spiritual guide and the freedom of an old woman towards a young man.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That gilpie o' mine suld have been here, but she's awa' to the hill. 
As weel try to keep a young jeuk frae the water as Katrine frae 
stravaigin' the countryside.  And her bred denty in France and England 
whaur there are nae hills!  If she had a Jo [*] I wad say nocht, but 
she has nae Jo but the whaups.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* sweetheart.
</footnote>
<para>
He asked concerning Nicholas Hawkshaw.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And that's speirin'! &quot;she cried.  &quot; He's fechtin' and him a lameter, 
but whaur he's fechtin' and in what cause the Lord alone kens!  Since 
he gaed off wi' Tam Purves three months syne sorrow a word has come 
frae him.  He's maybe in England and maybe in France, and maybe ryngin' 
with Montrose, and I'll wager wherever he is, him and his swird and 
Tam and his firelock are in the het o't. Ye'll no fetter a Hawkshaw, 
and they can nae mair bide in the ae place than a puddock on a brac, 
as my puir sister that was married on him kenned ower weel. And the 
same bluid's in Katrine, wha suld hae been a laddie, and a tinkler 
laddie, for it's no her that will mind her seam or watch the pot when 
the sun's shinin'.  She's a fine lassie for a' that, but by ordinar' 
forgetfu'. I wish I saw her wed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Of Woodilee she had many questions to ask.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's a' Hawkshaw land, but I never likit the folk. There's awheen fosy 
bodies yonder, wha pray mair with their tongues than their hearts, and 
they're as keen at a niffer [*] as a Musselburgh wabster -- aye wi' the 
puir face and the greetin' word when it comes to payin' siller. Auld 
Dobbie in Murchison's Close -- he's our doer,[**] ye maun ken, as his father 
was afore him -- he has had mony a sair tuilzie for our bits o' rents. 
Now that Nicholas is at the wars it's my shoulther that has to carry 
the burden, and there's never a post frae Embrd but brings me Dobbie's 
scribin'.  Ye'll ken that the mailin' o' Crossbasket is to let, and 
whaur am I to get a guid tenant wi' the land in siccan a steer?&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* bargain. ** man of business.
</footnote>
<para>
David told her the news he had heard at Kirk Aller.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Keep us a'!&quot; she cried.  &quot; God send Nicholas binna wi' Montrose or we'll 
hae him and Tam Purves here rauvagin' his am lands, and if Argyll gets 
the upper hand they'll be glorifyin' God at the end o' a tow in the 
Grassmarket. Hech, sir, we're surely faun on the latter days when, 
it is written, confusion will be on the people.  I'm for the Kirk, 
but they tell me Montrose is likewise for the Kirk as he conceives 
it, and between her twa well-wishers it's like our auld Sion will 
get uncoly mishandled. But I hae nae broo o' poalitics. My poalitics 
is just an auld wife's poalitics that wants to be left in peace by 
her fireside.  . .  But ye say Montrose is mairchin' south? He'll be 
for England, and that means the road by Aller Water.  I'll hae to 
kilt my coats and pit the tower o' Calidon in a state of defence 
against Nicholas or ony ither, for if I let the laird intil his 
am house we'll hae to answer for't before the Privy Council.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was plain that Mistress Saintserf was not ill-pleased with David, 
for she talked freely and would hardly let him go.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye're ower young for the sacred callin',&quot; she told him when at last 
he took his leave.  &quot;And ye're ower wise-like a man for a minister. 
Saunts suld hae weak stomachs, like our am Mr Fordyce; it gars them 
sit loose to earthly affections.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I would put up with his affliction if I could get one-half of his 
goodness,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;'Deed that's weel spoken.  I'm sure o' Heaven if I can get haud o' 
the strings of Mr James's cloak. Never heed an auld wife's clavers.  
Come back and prie our grosarts when they're ripe, and if ye see 
thet lass o' mine on the hill tell her I'm waitin' for her wi' a besom.&quot;
</para>
<para>
On his way home David had no sight of Katrine, but the next afternoon 
he met her in Paradise. She came to him smiling and friendly as a boy.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have been to Calidon and seen Aunt Grizel. I congratulate you on 
your conquest, sir, for my aunt is now your devout partisan and you have 
won another friend in this countryside.  But what is this news of the 
Lord Marquis?&quot;
</para>
<para>
They whiled away the summer afternoon with talk, rambling sometimes 
through the oak glades, but always returning to the nook by the spring, 
while David kept a jealous eye on the declining sun. The girl must be 
well on her way to Calidon before the first dusk began.  When he came 
again they did not talk of his troubles, nor even of Montrose, but 
of little things, her childhood in France, her kin, the tales of the 
glen, his own youth at Edinburgh College.  For she was not an ally so 
much as a refuge. When he was with her he was conscious that the world 
was still large and sunlit, the oppression lifted from his spirit, he 
saw himself not only victor in the quarrel but a messenger of God with 
a new gospel to perplexed mankind.
</para>
<para>
One evening, when he had seen the girl descend through the hazels to 
the Rood vale, and had turned back for the shoulder of the Hill of Deer, 
he saw a man's figure slanting across the hill as if coming from 
Melanudrigill. It was Reiverslaw, but though their paths all but 
intersected the farmer did not stop to talk.  He waved a hand in greeting.  
&quot; Ye suld gie a look in at the Greenshiel,&quot; he shouted. &quot;They tell me 
Richie Smail is in need of consolation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David took the hint, passed word to Richie, and the next evening 
met Reiverslaw in the herd's cottage. &quot;Tak' a look round the faulds, 
Richie,&quot; said the master.  &quot;Me and the minister has something to 
say to ither,&quot; and the two were left alone in the dim sheiling.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I've been spyin' oot the land,&quot; said Reiverslaw, &quot;like the lads that 
Joshua sent afore him into Canaan.  I canna say I likit the job, but 
I've been through the Wud east and west and I've found the bit whaur 
the Coven meets aside the auld altar.  I think I could find the road 
till't on the blackest nicht. And I've been speirin' judeeciously 
in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But surely they did not answer?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The dark face of the farmer had a crooked grin. &quot;Trust me, I was discreet. 
But I've a name for takin' a stoup ower muckle, and when the folk thocht 
I was fou, my lugs were as gleg as a maukin's. They're preparin' for 
another Sabbath, and it fa's on the Lammas Eve.  On that nicht you and 
me maun tak' the Wud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David shivered, and the man saw it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The flesh is weak,&quot; he said, &quot;and I'm feelin' like that mysel'.  But 
you an me are no the anes to pit our hand to the plew-stilts and turn 
back. Mr Sempill, are ye young enough to speel a tree?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was a great climber as a laddie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Weel, ye'll hae to be a laddie aince again. And I'll tell ye mair.  
Ye'll hae to leave this place afore the Lammas-tide.  Is there ony 
bit ye can bide at, not abune twenty miles frae Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is my cousin at Newbiggin.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Weel, to Newbiggin ye gang, and your departure maun be public.  Crack 
about it for days afore. Tell the auld wife at the manse and deave her 
wi' your preparation.  For, if you're no oot o' the parish in guid 
time, ye'll be lockit in your chamber, as ye were on the second Beltane.  
And ye maun be in the Wud that nicht as a witness, for there's just 
us twasome, you and me, and we maun be witnesses that the Presbytery 
and the Sheriff and the Lords in Embro cannot deny.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I see that.  But have you found out nothing more in Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I've gotten a hantle o' suspeecions.  Man, ye'd wonder to see how 
chief me and Chasehope are these days.  I've been ower to see his 
English bull, and I've ta'en his advice about sheep, and I've sell't 
him a score o' gimmers at a price that made me voamit.  He thinks I'm 
a dacent, saft, through-ither body, wi' his wits sair fuddled by 
strong drink, and has nae back-thochts o' ane that's just clay in 
his hands. . . .  Ay, and I've been payin' muckle attention to his 
hen-house.  His wife, ye maun ken, is a notable hen-wife, and she has 
a red cock that there's no the like o' in the countryside.  I took 
Rab Prentice up wi' me to Chasehope toun, and I bade Rab tak' special 
note o' the red cock.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But I do not see the purpose. . . &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye needna -- yet. Ye'll be tell't in guid time. I'm thinkin' o' the 
process afore the Presbytery, and it's witnesses I'm seekin'. I hae 
twa honest men, my herds Richie Smail and Rab Prentice, but Richie''s 
ower auld to tak' the Wud and Hirplin' Rab wad dee afore he would 
pit his neb inside it. So there's just you and me for the chief job, 
though the ither twa will hae their uses.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The imminence of the trial made David's heart sick, for he had now 
brooded for three months on the mysteries of the Wood, whereas at 
Beltane he had stumbled upon them in hot blood unwittingly. He was 
confident in his cause, but he believed most firmly that the Devil 
in person would be his antagonist, and the cool tones of Reiverslaw 
struck him with admiration and awe.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man, you speak as calm as if you were making ready for a clipping.  
Is it that you do not believe in the power of Satan?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I believe in God,&quot; said the man, &quot;and I've seen ower muckle o' the 
world no to believe in the Deil. But I'll no be feared o' a Deil that 
misguides auld wives and tak's up wi' rotten peats like Chasehope, 
and though he comes in a brimestane lowe I'll hae a nick at him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Then began for David a time of doubt and heart-searching.  He could 
not share the robust confidence of Reiverslaw, for his memory of 
Beltane was too clear and he had lived too long under its shadows.  
His imagination, always quick and easily kindled, ran riot, and he 
saw the Wood as an abode of horrid mysteries, which spread into 
subtle ramifications of evil the more he pondered them.  His secular 
learning was so much fuel to this fire.  Courage did not fail him, 
but brightness died out of his world, and he knew himself condemned 
to tread a dark winepress alone.
</para>
<para>
It was the thought of Katrine that most disquieted him.  The Wood, the 
whole parish, the very mission on which he was engaged, seemed to him 
one vast pollution, to be kept hidden for ever from youth and innocence.  
The girl must not be allowed to come within sight of the skirts of it.  
There could be no friendship between them, and it was his first 
duty to warn her.
</para>
<para>
So when they met in Paradise it was a shame -- ; faced young man that 
stood before her, a young man with a white face who kept his eyes on the
ground and spoke terrible things.  Words came unreadily, but his 
broken speech was more moving than eloquence.  He bade her keep to 
the clean precincts of Calidon and come not even near the greenwood. 
God's curse was on the parish, and in the judgment preparing innocent 
might share with guilty.  As for himself, he was no friend for 
such as she.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am too heavily burdened,&quot; he stammered.  &quot;I must touch pitch and 
my hands will be defiled.  I will blight your youth with my dark duties. . 
I will never come again to this place, and I plead with you to come 
no more, for it is too near the Enemy's country. . . .  Go away now, 
I beg of you, and forget that you have ever seen me and called me 
friend.  You will torture me if you bide. . . . &quot;
</para>
<para>
There was more of the same sort, and then David stopped, confident 
that he had done his purpose, and that no proud girl would linger 
in the face of such a warning.  He waited, very cold and lonely at 
heart, and he thought he heard her departing feet on the grass.
</para>
<para>
But when he raised his eyes, she had not moved, and her face 
was smiling.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter X</chapnum>
<title>What The Moon Saw</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THERE</emph> was great heat at the end of July -- sultry, thunderous weather 
when the hills drowsed under a haze and the sun's beams seemed to 
be the more torrid for the screen of vapour through which they
fell.  The heavens were banking up for the Lammas rains.  But each 
evening the skies cleared, and the night was an amethyst dome 
sprinkled with stars.
</para>
<para>
David made a great to-do about his visit to Newbiggin.  On the Monday 
morning he announced it to Isobel, and in an hour the word had gone 
through the village.  His housekeeper seemed to receive the news with 
relief.  &quot; Blithe I am to hear it, sir. Folk suld whiles change their 
ground like bestial, and ye've been ower lang tethered to this parochine. 
Newbiggin will be a caller bit in this lown weather, and while ye're awa' 
I'll get your chamber cleaned and the stairs washed doun.  Dinna haste 
to come back, for I'll no look for ye or Setterday.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He set off on the Tuesday after midday and there were many eyes in 
Woodilee to mark his going. That night he duly slept at Newbiggin, but 
the next day, which was Lammas Eve, he left his cousin's house and rode 
up Clyde water into the farthest moors. It was a wide circuit, which 
brought him in the afternoon to the uplands which separate Rood from 
Annan.  All day he had been out of sight of human dwelling, and the 
first he saw was in the dusk when he descended upon the tower of 
Calidon by the glen of the Calidon burn.  At Calidon he left his 
horse with the grieve, promising to return for it on the morrow, 
and with one look at the lit; windows of the tower he set out on foot 
to ford the Rood.  About nine o'clock in the mulberry gloaming he 
reached the cottage of the Greenshiel.
</para>
<para>
Three figures greeted him there.  One was the herd of the outer 
hirsel, Richie Smail; another was Rab Prentice, the herd of the 
home hirsel, who sat on the turf deas at the cottage-end with his 
crutch beside him; the third was Reiverslaw himself, who was also 
seated, smoking a pipe of tobacco.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye're in braw time, Mr Sempill,&quot; said the last. &quot;Did Ye pass ony 
folk on the road?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have seen no man since the morning, except the Calidon grieve 
half an hour syne.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And that's just as weel.  Richie, kindle the cruisie, for our job 
is better done indoors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The feeble light in the hut revealed a curious assembly.  The two 
shepherds had faces of portentous gravity, and their twitching mouths 
and restless eyes were proof of an extreme discomfort. Reiverslaw 
wore his usual frieze small-clothes and boot-hose, but he had no coat, 
though he had slung on his arm what might have been that garment. He 
flung this on the settle.  &quot;It's ower het to wear that muckle maud 
till the time comes. We maun get to business, Mr Sempill, for you should 
be on the road af ore the moon rises. We're here to get our plan 
strauchtit oot and there's jimp [*] time. Rab Prentice, ye've been 
twice wi' me to Chasehope in the last se'en days. Ye mind the braw 
red cock the wife has gotten?&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* scarcely.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Fine,&quot; said the shepherd.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's no sic another fowl in the countryside?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That I'll engage.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Therefore if I show ye the morn a pluckin' o' red feathers, ye'll 
jalouse it's the Chasehope cock?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay.  But I'm no gaun intil the Wud . . . not even in braid daylicht.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;If I bid ye, ye wull gang, Rab Prentice, though I suld carry ye 
myself. . . .  Now, secondly, as the ministers say.  Do ye see this 
bottle? Smell it, a' three of ye. That's a smell ye never fand afore? 
It's what they call oil of hennyseed, and I got it frae a horse-doctor 
at Carlisle.  I'll wager there's no anither phial o' the same between 
here and Embro. It's a smell ye'll no sune forget.  Pit a dab on yer 
sleeves to remind ye o't.  If the three o' us gangs to Chasehope the 
morn and finds Chasehope's breeks and Chasehope's sark stinkin' o' 
this oil, ye'll be able to swear to it, and to swear that I showed 
it you this verra nicht and that ye kenned the smell when ye 
fand it again.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The two men agreed, sniffing the drop on their sleeve.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Thirdly,&quot; said Reiverslaw, &quot;I'm gaun to turn mysel' intil a guisyard.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He picked up the thing he had been carrying and revealed it as a cloak 
of deerskins which fitted like a loose jerkin.  Over his head he drew 
a cap of skin with slits for his eyes, a roughly shaped nozzle like 
a deer's, and on the top the horns of a goat.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Save us a'!&quot; Richie cried, as he saw his master
stand up, his lean, active body surmounted by a
beast's head.  &quot;Save us a', ye're no gaun to tamper
wi' the accursed thing !&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That's what I ettle, but the intention is guid, and it's by our 
intentions we'll be judged, as Mr Sempill will tell ye.  Look at 
me, ye daft auld fules, for there's naething to be feared o'.  
I'm for the Wud the nicht, and it's my purpose to bide in cover 
till the folk are half dementit, and syne when their een are blind 
to join them.  I've a notion that there will be some wark wi' 
the red cock, and I'd like a feather or twa as a keepsake.  
And I've a sort of notion that my auld friend Chasehope will be 
there! so as a token o' friendship I'll pit saut on his tail -- 
whilk means that if I get the chance I'll anoint his dowp wi' the 
hennyseed.  Now, you twa, take tent and listen to me.  Ye will swear 
that I telled ye what I have telled ye, and that ye saw me at the 
Greenshiel dressed up like a merry-andrew.  The horns suld hae been 
a stag's; but I was feared o' hankin' them in the busses, so the 
fine auld Reiverslaw billy-goat had to dee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He was a crazy sight with the goat's head on him, and a formidable 
sight without it, for as he stood in that dusk beside two men bent 
with labour, the one maimed and the other past the allotted span of 
human years, David had an impression of something desperate and 
fearless and light-hearted.  The shepherds were clearly torn between 
loyalty and terror, and he himself, while firm enough in his resolve, 
had to keep his thoughts battened down to prevent his knees knocking. 
But Reiverslaw seemed to have no fears.  He had set about the thing 
as cannily as if it were selling sheep at Lockerbie fair, and now, 
with a venture before him which not two other men in Scotland would 
have contemplated, he was notably the least embarrassed of the party.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I saw three pyots [*] flee intil the Wud this morning,&quot; said Prentice, 
&quot;and but ane cam back. That's an unco freit [**] for the beginnin' o't!&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* magpies. ** omen.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Haud your tongue, ye auld wife,&quot; said Reiverslaw.  &quot;Freits fa' to them 
that fear them, and I'm no gaun to fash my heid about twa jauds o' birds. . .
</para>
<para>
I had a vision yestereen,&quot; Richie put it.  &quot;I saw the haill land o' 
Scotland like a field of aits,
</para>
<para>
white until the harvest, the haill land frae John o' Groats to 
Galloway, a' but the parish o' Woodilee, whilk was unplewed and 
rough wi' briars and thrissles.  An' says I to mysel', 'Whatever 
place is yon?'and says a voice to me, 'That's what we ca' the 
Deil's Baulk in the gospel field o' Scotland.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And a very true observe, for Deil's Baulk is just what the Wud is, 
and it's for us to pit a plew intill't and mak' a fire o' the wastry.  
Set bite and sup afore the minister, Richie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The shepherd produced some oatcakes, of which David ate only a mouthful, 
for though he had had no food since morning, his throat was dry and 
his tongue like a stick.  He drank, however, a pint of buttermilk.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Kim-milk for you? &quot; the host asked of Reiverslaw.  &quot;I hae nae yill, 
but Rab has brocht a flask o' aquavitty ye gied him at the lambin'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll hae spring water.  Nae strong drink for me, for this nicht 
I'm like Jonadab the son of Rechab. . . .  Are ye ready, Mr Sempill?  
Ye maun start first, for ye've a tree to speel.  There's nae hurry 
for me till the Deil begins his pipin'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are either strong in the faith, or of a very stout heart,&quot; 
said David admiringly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No as strong as I might be,&quot; was the answer. &quot;Afore we part, wad it 
no be weel for you to pit up a prayer?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The minister prayed -- and it was as if he confessed alone to his God 
in his closet.  He himself was strengthened by it, and the comfort of 
Richie and Rab was visibly enlarged.  But Reiverslaw stood through the 
devotions in no very devout position, and from him came none of the 
responses which flowed from the others.  Before the
</para>
<para>
&quot;Amen&quot; he had his goat-cap on, and was peering at the rising moon.  He 
made his staff sing as he whirled it.
</para>
<para>
David took his strange confederate's hand, and his own shook.  Reiverslaw 
noted his trepidation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Fear nocht, sir.  It'll gang ill wi' the wirriecow gin we meet him.  
But what brocht a man o' peace like you into this tuilzie?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Jealousy for the honour of my God.  And you? For it is less 
your quarrel than mine.
</para>
<para>
The man grinned.  &quot;Write it down that Andra Shillinglaw couldna see 
an honest man beat, and that he didna like kail-worms.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David had many times gone over in his mind the route to the glade 
of the altar, and had compared notes with Reiverslaw that very night. 
The distance was less than three miles, and he had a couple of hours 
to reach the place and still be in position well before midnight.  
As on all the nights of the past week, the oppressive haze of the 
day had lifted, and the sky rose to an infinite height, thick studded 
with stars, for the moon was only new risen.  David made his way to 
the dividing glen between the pines and the hazels in a miserable 
disquiet.  He had lost the first fierce anger which had stiffened 
him for his frustrated expedition on the eve of the second Beltane, 
and his tacit ostracism all summer by the folk of Woodilee had 
engendered a profound self-distrust.  Even the thought of Katrine 
Yester did not nerve him; she belonged to a world separated by impassable 
gulfs from that black necromancy which he warred against.  Nor did 
the fact that he had an ally comfort him, for Reiverslaw, he greatly 
feared, fought in his own strength and not in that of the Lord, and 
in such a strife the arm of flesh could not avail them.  As he 
stumbled through the dark undergrowth David's lips moved in 
anxious prayers.
</para>
<para>
He entered the pines, and, shaping his course by the low line of cliffs, 
came to the place where he had first met Katrine.  Thus far he felt 
that he was not wholly outside the pale of kindly things. But after 
that he was in enemy country, and the moon was still too low to give 
him help.  He wasted half an hour in the thickets, till by a strong 
effort of will he forced himself to take his bearings and remember 
Reiverslaw's instructions.  He scrambled up hill again till he was 
in touch with the outcrop of rock, and then suddenly found himself 
looking down on the glade where stood the altar.
</para>
<para>
It was very dark, and the stone was only a ghostly blur.  But the 
darkness was a blessing, for the place was not as he had seen it before, 
and the sight of it did not revive the terrors he had feared. It looked 
no more than a woodland glade, and the fact that a rabbit scurried 
from under his feet seemed a friendly omen.  On the far side the 
trees grew thick, and he selected a gnarled Scots fir as his perch 
for the night. Its trunk, branchless for sixty feet, was too thick 
to climb, but he found a younger and slimmer tree, up which he could 
squirm and from its upper branches traverse to the other.  He had 
not tried the game since he was a boy, and at first his legs and arms 
seemed too feeble; but the exercise warmed him, and after twice sliding 
back to the ground, he at last reached the umbrella-like spread of 
the crest. To gain the other tree proved more difficult than he had 
thought, and he was compelled to let his body swing and make a 
long stretch with his right arm. But the task was accomplished in 
the end, and he found himself on a platform of crooked fir boughs, 
hidden from everything but the stars, and with a view through the 
gaps of the branches to the glade below him.
</para>
<para>
He had now a clear sight of the sky. The moon was three-quarters up, 
and the whole of Melanudrigill with its slopes and valleys was washed 
in silver.  He was in it and yet above it and outside it, like a 
man on a hillside looking into a cleft. lie made his body comfortable 
in a crutch of the tree, and looked down on the stage beneath him. 
It was now lighting up, and the altar was whitened by a stray moonbeam. 
For the first time that night he felt his spirits returning.  The 
oppression of the Wood was not realised on this outer shell of it, 
for here only winged things dwelt, and the unclean things of the 
dark had no wings.
</para>
<para>
In this happier mood his eyes sought the whereabouts of Calidon. It 
was ridden by a ridge, the ridge to the west where lay Paradise. 
The thought gave him an unreasoning pleasure.  He was not cut off 
from the world of light, for, whatever befell on the earth beneath 
him, he had but to lift up his eyes and they rested on a happier 
country.
</para>
<para>
As the moon rose, the multitudinous little noises of a wood at night 
were hushed. There was a sleepy muttering of cushats to the south 
of him, and then, with a clatter which made him jump, the birds 
rose in a flock and flew across the valley. After that there was 
no sound until the music began.
</para>
<para>
There was no fixed moment for its beginning, for it seemed to steal 
insensibly into the air. And it was scarcely music, but rather a 
delicate babble of tongues which made a crooning like the low notes
of a pipe. The sound was all beneath him near the ground, and gathering 
from different quarters to one centre. Suddenly in the midst of it 
came a sharp liquid note, several times repeated, a note with authority 
in it like a trumpet, and yet ineffably faint and distant as if it 
were the echo of an echo.  It did not flutter David's heart, for 
there was no threat in it, but it had a strange effect upon his mind. 
For it seemed familiar, and there was that in him which answered it.  
He felt a boy again, for in the call there was the happy riot and 
the far horizons of childhood, and the noise of hill winds and 
burns, and the scent of heather and thyme, and all the unforgotten 
things of memory.
</para>
<para>
The silver trumpet did not speak again, but the soft babble was 
creeping nearer, and suddenly just beneath him it broadened and 
deepened into the sound of pipes. He looked down and saw that 
the dance had begun.  As before, the piper with his hound mask sat 
cross-legged beyond the altar, and the dancers revolved widdershins 
around him. . . . 
</para>
<para>
To his amazement he found himself looking on not in terror, but in 
curiosity.  It was a graver dance than that of Beltane, not the mad 
riot of the bursting life of Spring, but the more sober march of 
summer and the hot suns bringing on the harvest.
</para>
<para>
Seen from above, the figures were only puppets, moving at the bidding 
of a lilt that rose and fell like a lost wind.  The passion of wrath 
with which he had watched the former Sabbath had utterly gone from 
him. He felt a curious pity and friendliness, for there was innocence 
here, misguided innocence.
</para>
<para>
Will this be the way God looks down upon the follies of the world?&quot; 
he asked himself. What was it that Reiverslaw had said ? -- If the Kirk 
confines human nature too strictly, it will break out in secret ways, 
for men and women are born into a terrestrial world, though they 
have hopes of Heaven.
</para>
<para>
That was blasphemy, and he knew it, but he did not shudder at it.
</para>
<para>
How long these gentle dances continued he did not know, for he was 
in a dream and under the spell of the piping. . . .  Then suddenly 
there came a change.  The dancing-floor became dark, and he saw that 
clouds were coming over the moon, and a chill had crept into the air. 
Lights sprang up Out of nowhere, and though the wind had begun to 
sigh through the trees, he noted that these lights did not flicker. . . . 
The music stopped, and the dancers crowded together around the altar.
</para>
<para>
The hound-faced leader stood above them with something in his hand. 
The mysterious light seemed to burn redly, and he saw that the thing 
was a bird -- a cock which was as scarlet as blood. The altar top 
was bare, and something bright spurted into the hollow of the stone. 
From the watchers came a cry which chilled David's marrow, and he 
saw that they were on their knees.
</para>
<para>
The leader was speaking in a high shrill voice like a sleepwalker's, 
and David caught but the one word often repeated -- Abiron. Every time 
it was uttered the man dabbled his finger in the blood on the altar 
and marked a forehead, and as each received the mark he or she fell 
prostrate on the ground. . .
</para>
<para>
There was no innocence now in that spectacle of obscene abasement.  
Terror entered into David's soul, and his chief terror was that he 
had not been afraid before.  He had come very near falling him 
self under the spell.
</para>
<para>
There followed what seemed to be a roll-call. The leader read names 
out of a book and the prostrate figures answered.  The names seemed 
like an idiot's muttering, not good Scots words, but uncouth gutturals. 
And always like an undercurrent came the word Abiron.
</para>
<para>
Then with an unholy cry the whole Coven was on its feet.  The pipes 
began again, and music other than pipes, which seemed to soak out of 
the ground and the adjacent coverts. Gone was every trace of gentleness 
and innocency.  It was witch-music made by the Devil himself on the 
red-hot chanter-reeds of Hell, and the assembly capered as if their 
feet were on the lake of burning marl. The Israelitish prophet in 
David awoke, and he saw it all with clear eyes and horror-stricken 
soul.
</para>
<para>
If the Beltane dance had been hideous, this was the very heart of bestial 
lust.  Round and round it swept, a fury and yet an ordered fury, in which 
madness and obscenity were mingled.  He recognised the faces of women, 
old and young, who sat devoutly beneath him in kirk of a Sabbath.  The 
men were all masked, but he knew that if he could tear off the beast 
coverings he would see features which were normally composed into a 
pious decency. Figure would clasp figure and then fling apart, but 
in each circuit he noted that the dancers kissed some part of the 
leader's body, nozzling him like dogs on the roadside.
</para>
<para>
Up in his treetop the minister had now an undivided mind.  He had the 
names of several of the females of the Coven firm in his memory, and 
for the men he must trust to Reiverslaw.  There were some of the 
dancers with goat-horns, but as the rout swung round it seemed 
to him that a new goat-mask had appeared, a taller wilder figure, 
who was specially devout in his obeisance before Hound-face.  Was 
it Reiverslaw with his aniseed?
</para>
<para>
The night had become very dark and the only light in the glade came 
from the candles which burned in its hidden hollows.  And then suddenly 
a colder wind blew, and like the burst of a dam came a deluge of rain.  
The Lammas floods had broken, stealing upon the world, as is their 
fashion, out of a fair sky.
</para>
<para>
It seemed to David -- and he held it part of the infernal miracle -- 
that the torrent did not quench the lights. In a trice he himself 
was soaked to the skin, but the candles still burned, though the rain 
beat on the floor of the glade with a sound like a whip-lash. . . .  
But it ended the dance.  The silver pipe sounded again, and as the 
wind rose higher and the falling water slanted under it to search out 
even the bield of the trees, he saw figures moving hurriedly off.  
The next time he looked down through the spears of rain-for the hidden 
moon still made a dim brightness in the world-the glade was empty.  
Above the noise of the storm he thought he heard the strange babble 
of tongues, but now it was departing to the far corners of the Wood.
</para>
<para>
He waited for a little and then tried to descend. But he found it 
harder to get down than to get up, for he could not find the branch 
by which he had swung himself from the lesser tree, and in the end 
had to drop a good twenty feet into the bracken, whence he rolled 
into the empty glade. . . .  He scrambled to his feet and made haste 
to get out of it, but not before he had sniffed the odour of unclean
pelts. -- And yes -- surely that was the stink of Reiverslaw's aniseed.
</para>
<para>
He had no difficulty about his homeward course. Most of the way he 
ran, but fear had completely left his heart.  The rain in his face 
seemed to cleanse and invigorate him.  He had looked upon great 
wickedness, but he had looked down on it, like the Almighty, from 
above, and it seemed a frail and pitiful thing -- a canker to be rooted 
out, but a thing with no terror for a servant of God. The Devil 
was but a butcher after all.  And then he remembered how the first 
notes of the music had melted him, and he felt humbled.
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw had arrived at the Greenshiel before him.  The place was 
filled with the reek of burning hides, and David saw that the 
goat-mask and cloak had been laid on the peats.  His ally, a weird 
dripping figure, sat on a stool swilling the aqua vitae which Rab 
Prentice had brought with him.  He, who had started the night's 
venture with such notable sang-froid, was now in a sweat of fright.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Be thankit yore safe,&quot; he stuttered, while the spirits spilled over 
his beard.  &quot; I never thocht to see ye mair, for I never thocht to 
win out o' yon awesome place.  My legs are a' gashed and scartit, 
for I cam here through stane and briar like a dementit staig.[*]  
Oh, sir, siccan a sicht for mortal een!&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* young horse.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Saw ye the Foul Thief?&quot; asked the awed Prentice.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I saw ane in his image, and I got a drap o' the red cock's bluid, 
and I loupit like the lave, but it wasna wi' their unholy glee.  
Sir, I was fair wud wi' terror-me that am no gien to fear muckle -- 
for I got a cauld grue in my banes and my een turned back in their 
sockets. I tell ye, I forgot the errand I had come on, I forgot my 
name and my honest upbringing, and I was like a wean forwandered 
among bogies. . . .  I've burnt thae skins, and when I get hame 
I'll burn every stitch o' cleading, for the reek o' the Pit is 
on it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you recognise many?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No me.  I had nae een to see wi'. I spun round like a teetotum and 
I wadna say but I let out skellochs wi' the best -- may God forgie me!&quot;
&quot;But the oil -- the aniseed?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw held up something which David saw was an empty bottle.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I didna fail ye there. For the ae man I kenned in the Coven was 
him that piped. When I cam near him I felt a stound o' black hate, 
and there's but the ae man on God's earth that can gar me scunner 
like yon.  So when it was my turn to bow down afore him, he gat 
mair frae me than a kiss. Unless he burns his breeks this very 
nicht there'll be a queer savour aboot the toun o' Chasehope 
the morn.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XI</chapnum>
<title>The Minister Girds Up His Loins</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>NEXT</emph> day David returned to the manse in time for the noontide 
meal. He was greeted by Isobel with a hospitable bustle, in which 
was apparent a certain relief.  She had known of the Lammas 
festival; she guessed, no doubt, that David too was aware of 
it, and she evidently took his visit to Newbiggin as a sign that 
he had at last taken her prudent counsel. But from her master she 
got no response. When questioned as to the welfare of his kin at 
Newbiggin he answered in civil monosyllables, ate his dinner in 
silence, and thereafter secluded himself in his study.
</para>
<para>
That evening he walked to the Greenshiel, where Reiverslaw and 
Prentice met him.  The former was in an excited state and had 
clearly been drinking -- to the scandal of the two shepherds, who 
wore portentous faces.  Richie Smail had the air of an honest man 
compelled to walk in abhorred paths; he had been reading his Bible 
before their arrival, and sat with a finger in the leaves, saying 
nothing, but now and then lifting puzzled eyes to his master. 
Prentice's hard jaw was set, and he swung his crutch as if it 
had been a pike staff.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We were at Chasehope by eleven hours this mornin',&quot; Reiversiaw 
announced.  &quot;I took Richie and Rab, as I forewarned Ephraim, to 
have a look at his new tups. But I needna tell you there was nae 
word of Ephraim. The wife said he was awa' to Kirk Aller, but she 
was like a hen on a het girdle a' the time, and I think we wad hae 
found him if we had ripit the press-beds. If he was lurking there 
he maun hae gotten a sair fricht, for I spak that loud ye could 
hae heard me on the tap o' Chasehope hill.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Did you find what you sought?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I fand eneuch.&quot;  He drew from a pocket a bunch of feathers. &quot;I got 
these last nicht in the Wud. Doubtless there'll be mair in the same 
place, if they havena been soopit up. But there's nae red cock the 
day in the toun o' Chasehope. I admired the wife's hens and speired 
what had become o' the cock, and was telled that it was deid -- chokit 
last nicht on a grosart. I ken the kind o' grosart that ended 
the puir beast.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And the aniseed?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw laughed tipsily.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We were just in time, sir. The wife had a fire lowin' in the yaird.  
'What's burnin', mistress?' says I. 'Just some auld clouts,' says 
she. 'There was a gangrel body sleepit ae nicht in the loft,' says 
she, 'and he left some duds ahint him, as fu' o' fleas as a cadger's 
bonnet. I'm haem' them brunt,' says she, 'for fear o' the weans.' 
Weel, me and Richie and Rab stood aside the fire, and it loupit as 
if an oil can had been skailed on it, and the reek that rase frae 
it was just the reek o' my wee bottle.  Mair nor that, there was a 
queer smell ayont the hallin -- Richie and Rab fand it as weel as me. 
What name wad ye gie it, Rab?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was the stink o' the stuff ye showed us in this house last nicht,&quot; 
said Prentice solemnly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sae muckle for that,&quot; said Reiverslaw. &quot;We've proof that the lad in 
the dowg's cap was nae ither than him we ken o'. Na, na, I never let 
on to the wife. I was jokesome and daffin' wi' her, and made a great 
crack o' the tups, and praised a' I saw about the toun, and Rab and 
Richie were as wise as judges. I had a dram inside me, and was just 
my canty ordinar'. But my een and my nostrils werena idle, and I 
saw what I've telled ye. . . . My heid was in sic a thraw last nicht 
that I canna sweir Wi' ony certainty to ither faces, though I hae 
my suspeecions about the weemen. But you, sir, sittin' aloft on 
the tree-tap, ye maun hae had a graund view, for there was licht 
eneuch to read prent.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I recognised certain women, to whom I can swear on my oath. About 
some I dare not be positive, but there were five of whom I have 
no doubt. There were Jean Morison and her daughter Jess.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The folk o' the 'Chasehopefit,&quot; Reiverslaw cried. &quot;Ay, they 
wad be there.  They've aye been ill-regarded.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And old Alison Geddie in the kirkton.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A daft auld wife, that skellochs like a sea-maw!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Eppie Lauder from Mirehope road-end.&quot; 
</para>
<para>
Richie Smail groaned. &quot;The widow of a tried Christian, Mr Sempill.  
A dacenter body than Wattie Lauder never walked the roads. It's 
terrible to thinko' the Deil's grip on the household o' faith.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Bessie Tod from the Mains.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Peety on us, but I sat neist her at the March fast-day when Mr 
Proudfoot preached, and she was granin' and greetin' like a bairn. 
Ye surely maun be in error, sir. Bessie was never verra strong in 
the heid, and she hasna the wits for the Deil's wark!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nevertheless she was there.  I am as certain of that as that I was 
myself in the tree-top. Of others I have suspicions, but of these 
five I have certainty.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw rubbed his great hands. &quot;Our business gangs cannily forward. 
We've gotten the names; o six o' the Coven and can guess at ithers. 
Man, we'll hae a riddlin' in Woodilee that will learn the folk 
no to be ill bairns. Ye'll be for namin' them frae the pu'pit, sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I must first bring the matter before the Presbytery.  I will 
prepare my dittay, and bring it before Mr Muirhead of Kirk Aller 
as the Presbytery's moderator, and I must be guided by him as to 
the next step. It is a matter for the courts of the Kirk and 
presently for the secular law.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw cried out.  &quot;What for maun ye gang near the Presbytery? If 
ye stir up yon byke ye'll hae commissioners of justiciary and prickers 
and the haul clamjamphrie, and in the lang end an auld kimmer or twa 
will suffer, and the big malefactors will gang scot frae.  Chasehope's 
ower near the lug o' the law to tak' ony scaith, and yon's the kailworm 
I wad be at. Be guidit by me, Mr Sempill, and keep the thing inside 
the pairish. As the auld saying gangs, bleach your warst hanks in 
your am yaird, for I tell ye if the Kirk and the Law hae the redding 
o't it's little justice will be done. Name and upbraid and denounce a' 
and sindry, but dinna delate to the Presbytery. A man may like the 
kirk weel eneuch, and no be aye ridin' on the riggin' o't. . . . 
I'll tell ye my way o't. Now that we ken some o' the Coven, the four 
o' us can keep our een open, and watch them as a dowg watches a 
ratton; and at their next Sabbath, as they Ca' it, we'll be ready 
for them. I can get a wheen Moffat drovers that fear neither man 
nor deil, and aiblins some o' Laird Hawkshaw's folk frae Calidon, 
and we'll break in on their Coven and tear the masks frae the men, 
and rub their nebs in their am mire, and dook the lot in the Water 
o' Aller. I'll wager that's the way to get rid o' witchcraft frae 
the parochine, for we'll inak' it an unco painfu' business to tak' 
the Wud. A witch or a warlock is a fearsome thing to the mind o' 
man, but they're bye wi't gin we mak' them gowks and laughing-stocks.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The two shepherds stared at the speaker with up-braiding eyes, and 
David's face looked as if a blasphemy had been spoken.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You would fight the Devil in your own carnal strength,&quot; he said 
sadly.  &quot;It's little you would make of it. You talk as if this 
wickedness of the Wood were but a natural human prank, when it is 
black sin that can only be combated by the spirit of God and such 
weapons as God has expressly ordained. Man, man, Reiverslaw, you've 
but a poor notion of the power of the Adversary. I tell you last 
night I was trembling-like a weaned child before yon blast that blew 
out of Hell, and you yourself were no better when I found you here.  
I durstna have entered the Wood except as a soldier of the Lord.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw laughed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was sair fleyed,[*] I'll no deny, but I got a juster view o' things 
wi' the daylicht.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* frightened. 
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;It would, appear that you got courage also from Lucky Weir.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;True.  I had my mornin and my meridian and an orra stoup or twa sinsyne.  
I'm a man that's aye been used wi' a guid allowance o' liquor. But the 
drink, if so be ye're no fou, whiles gi'es ye a great clearness, and I 
counsel ye, sir, to keep wide o' the law, whether it be of the Kirk or 
the State. It's a kittle thing, and him that invokes it is like to get 
the redder's straik. [**] It's like a horse that flings its heels when ye 
mount and dings out the rider's teeth.
</para>
<footnote>
** the peacemaker's blow.
</footnote>
<para>
But hae your am way o't, and dinna blame me if it's a fashious way. 
There's me and Rab Prentice and Richie Smail waitin' to sweir to what's 
in our knowledge, and if there's mair speirin' to be done in the Wud, 
I'll no fail ye.  But keep in mind, Mr Sempill, that I'm a thrang body, 
and maun be drawin' my crocks and sellin' my hog-lambs afore
the back-end, and it's like I'll hae to traivel to Dumfries, and maybe 
to Carlisle.  Richie will aye hae word o' my doings, and if ye want 
me it wad be wise to tell Richie a week afore.&quot;
</para>
<para>
That night on his return David summoned Isobel to his presence.  The 
housekeeper appeared with a more cheerful countenance than she had 
worn for weeks, but the minister's first words solemnised her.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Isobel Veitch, I asked you a question after Beltane and you refused 
me an answer.  I, your minister, besought your aid as a confessing 
Christian, and you denied it me.  I told you that I would not rest 
until I had rooted the idolatry of the Wood from this parish.  Since 
then I have not been idle, and I have found men who did not fail me.  
Three days back I rode to Newbiggin, as I told you, but I returned 
on Lammas Eve, and on Lammas Eve I was a witness a second time to 
the abominations of the heathen.  Not only myself, but another with 
me, so that the thing is established out of the mouths of two witnesses, 
while Robert Prentice and Richard Smail can speak in part to confirm 
me.  Now I have got my tale complete, and it is to the Presbytery 
that I shall tell it.  Will you implement it with such knowledge 
as you possess, or do you continue stiff in your recusancy?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The old	woman's eyes opened like an owl's.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Wha went with you -- wha was sae left to himsel'?&quot; she gasped.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Andrew Shillinglaw in Reiverslaw. . . .  One man and five women 
stand arraigned on our witness. I will speak their names, and I 
care not if you put it through the parish, for soon the names will 
be thundered from the pulpit.  The man was Ephraim Caird.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll no believe it,&quot; she cried.  &quot;Chasehope's aye been a polished 
shaft in Christ's kirk. . . .  He's o' your am Session. . . .  He 
cam' here, ye mind, when ye first broke bread in this house. Ay, 
and he was here when ye were awa at Newbiggin.  I was seilin' the 
milk when I heard his voice at the door -- cam' here wi' ane o' his 
wife's skim-milk kebbucks that she kens weel how to mak', for she's 
frae the Wastlands-spoke sae kind and neeborlike, and was speirin' 
for the health o' the gude man my maister. . . . Tak' it back, sir, 
for ye maun be mistook.   Ephraim's weel kenned for a fair Nathaniel.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was no doubt about her honesty, for the mention of Chasehope 
had staggered her.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nevertheless he is a whited sepulchre, painted without but inside 
full of bones and rottenness.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, sir, bethink ye afore ye mak' this fearsome accusation.  Your een 
may have played ye fause. And wha in their senses wad lippen to 
Reiverslaw? A muckle, black-avised, grippy incomer that nae man kens 
the get o'... sweirs like a dragon when the maut's abune the meat. 
Ye'll never gang to the Presbytery in siccan company wi' siccan a 
tale ! And Hirplin' Rab is a thrawn deevil, though I'll no deny he 
hae a gift o' prayer-and Richie Smail is sair failed in body and 
mind since last back-end when Mirren dee'd.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There are also five women,',' David went on. There are Jean and 
Jess Morison from Chasehopefoot.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sae that's where ye get your ill-will at Chasehope-because he's 
ower kind to turn twa randies intil the road!  I hae nothing to 
say for the Morisons.  They come oot o' a dirty nest, and they
may ride on a saugh ilka nicht to Norroway for a' I ken.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is Eppie Lauder at Mirehope.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tut, man, as dacent a body as ever boiled sowens.  And her man, Wattie, 
that dee'd in Aprile o' the year thretty-nine, was weel thocht o' by a' 
body. Ye've come till a frem'd toun wi' Eppie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And Alison Geddie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;A tongue like a bell-clapper, but ettles nae hairm.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Likewise Bessie Tod of the Mains.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She's weak in her mind, sir.  Lang syne she had a bairn to a sodger 
and it dee'd, and she never got ower it. Ye'll no convince me that 
there's ony ill in Bessie forbye the want o' sense.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have evidence of ill.  I accuse, I do not condemn.  It is for others 
to do the judging.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Isobel's timidity, which had been notable during the Beltane interview, 
seemed now to have left her. There was a sincere emotion in her voice.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I plead wi' ye, sir, to halt while yet there's time, and if needs be 
content yoursel' wi' private examination.  It's verra weel for Andrew 
Shilling -- law, that's but an incomer, and rakes the country gettin' 
as he gangs like a cadger's powny.  But you're the minister o' Woddilee, 
and the fair fame o' the parochine suld be as dear to you as your am. 
If ye tak' the gait ye speak o', ye'll mak' it a hissing and a 
reproach in a' the water of Aller.  It's a quiet bien bit, wi' douce 
folk weel agreed, and ye wad mak' it a desolation, and a' because 
some daft lads and a wheen hellicat lassies dance their twasomes 
in the Wud.  It's no as if they did ill things like garrin' the 
kye rin dry and the weans dwine.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Then you admit knowledge of the sin?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I admit nocht, for I ken nocht. Young folk will be young folk, 
peety though it be. . . .  But for Chasehope and my auld gossip, 
Eppie Lauder, the man's gyte that wad chairge them wi' idolatry -- 
and you can tell that to your drucken Reiverslaw.&quot;
</para>
<para>
For the first time since he had known her Isobel flung out of the 
room in a temper.
</para>
<para>
Next day he sought out Chasehope, and found him alone on the hill.  
The man greeted him with effusion.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Lammas rains is weel-timed this year, Mr Sempill, nae ragin' 
flood but just eneuch to slocken the ground.  I start cuttin' the 
bog hay the morn. I heard ye were at Newbiggin, sir, and I trust 
ye found your friends in guid health.  A blaw on the hills yonder 
is fine for a body after the lown air o' Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I returned home on the Lammas Eve.  I ask you, Ephraim Caird, as 
you will answer to your God, where were you in the mirk of that night?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The heavy face, now brick-red with summer suns, did not change.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where suld I be but in my bed? I gaed till't early, for I had a lang 
day wi' the hog-lambs.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You know that that is a lie.  You were in the Wood, as you were in 
the Wood at Beltane, dancing away your miserable soul to the Devil's 
piping. With my own eyes I saw you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The astonishment of Chasehope was admirably simulated.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Are ye daft, sir?  Are ye gane clean gyte? Ye're no wed, Mr Sempill.  
Sit ye doun, and I'll fetch you some water in my bonnet.  Ye've got 
a blaff o' the sun.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot; I am not mad nor am I sick.  I have preached throughout the summer 
at the sin and the time has now come to get to grips with the sinner.  
This is your last chance, Ephraim Caird. Will you confess to me, who 
have been set in spiritual authority over you, or must confession be 
wrung from you by other means?&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was a warning which David felt bound to give, but he was silent as 
to the rest of his purpose, for he had decided that the time had not 
yet come to show his hand.  He looked sternly at Chasehope, and under 
his gaze the man's face seemed to whiten, and his odd greenish eyes 
to waver.  But it might be in innocent amazement.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I kenna what ye speak o',&quot; he stammered. &quot;What concern have I wi' 
the Wud? Ask the wife and she'll tell you that I sleepit the Lammas 
nicht in my bed.  But oh -- the thing fair coups the crans! 
. . . and me an elder thae ten year! Ye're no weel or ye're dementit 
to speak sic words to a man like me. Awa hame, sir, and humble yoursel' 
on your knees and pray that ye may be forgiven. . . .  I may cry out 
in the words of the Psalmist, 'They opened their mouth wide against 
me, and said Aha, our eye hath seen it.'&quot;
</para>
<para>
David's hand clenched on his staff.  &quot;Before God,&quot; he cried, &quot;I will 
strike you down if you utter another blasphemous word.  You neglect 
my warning? Then your punishment be on your own guilty head.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He turned and strode away.  Once he looked back, and saw Chasehope 
still staring, the very image of virtuous dismay.
</para>
<para>
There was no sermon in the kirk the next two Sabbaths.  Robb the bellman 
had orders not to ring the bell, but few came to the kirkyard gate, for 
the rumour had spread that the minister would conduct no ordinances 
until he had taken counsel with the Presbytery.  David waited, hoping 
for he knew not what-some thaw to melt this icy impenitence. At last 
on the sixteenth day of August he rode to Kirk Aller to visit Mr 
Muirhead.
</para>
<para>
He found the Moderator in his parlour in the little stone manse, 
which stood below the kirk on the knowe at the west gate above the 
brig of Aller. The room had few books, but a mass of papers, for 
Mr Muirhead was an active ecclesiastic and noted for his conduct 
of church business.  Also, as if to meet the disturbed times in 
which he lived, a pair of spurred boots, still with the mud on them, 
stood beside the table, on it lay a brace of ancient pistols, and 
from the peg of the door hung a great horse-man's cloak.
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead bent a preoccupied brow on David as he entered, but his 
face was well content. There were open letters before him, and it 
seemed that he had just been the recipient of welcome news.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Come awa in, Mr David,&quot; he cried.  He saw his visitor's eye stray 
to the pistols.  &quot; Ay, I've got me to the auld weapons. I had them 
with me at the memorable assembly in Glasgow in '38 when we dang down 
the Bishops.  . . I have a crow to pyke with you, but first I have 
some braw tidings for your ear.  At the last Presbytery we met under 
the shadow of calamity, but the Lord has mercifully turned again the 
captivity of Sion.  Yon devil's spawn, Montrose -- alas that he should 
take his name from a burgh of which worthy Mr Saunders Linklater 
was so long the faithful minister ! -- yon Montrose, I say, approaches 
the end of his tether.  It has been a long tether, and he has ravened 
like a hungry hound, but he will soon be back on his haunches with the 
rope tightening at his thrapple.  The Almighty has wysed him with a 
sure hand intil the snare that was prepared for him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Has he been defeated?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;By this time there is good hope that he has been scattered to the four 
airts of Heaven. After his savageries in the north he marches south to 
rend the fair' fields of Stirling and the Lennox, and summon the towns 
of Glasgow and Embro, whilk are the citadels of our faith. Like 
Jeshurun he has waxed fat and kicked, but his pride will have a fearful 
fall; for long ere he wins to Clyde the trap will be sprung.  He is 
bye Perth and at this moment, I trow, at the skirts of the Ochills. 
Before him lie Argyll and Baillie with horse and foot, which are to 
his heathen hirelings as four men to one. The faithful folk of Fife 
are marching cannily against his left flank, and mustering from the 
Glasgow airt against his right are the braw lads of the West, led by 
those well-disposed noblemen, the Earl of Eglinton, the Earl of Cassilis, 
and the Earl of Glencairn. More -- all the gentry of Clydesdale are on 
the road, commanded by the Earl of Lanark, and him and his Hamiltons 
are waiting to soop up the remnants of that which Argyll will shatter. 
Isna that a bonny tale, Mr Sempill?  Isna that a joyful recalling 
of our bondage, even as streams of water in the south?&quot;
</para>
<para>
David assented, but 'to his surprise bis interest was faint.  He had 
more pressing problems than the public captivity of Israel.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And now for other matters,&quot; said Mr Muirhead, setting his mouth 
again in severe lines.  &quot;I have word of grave mishandling at Woodilee. 
You have created a stramash in the doucest and most God-regarding 
parish in the presbytery of Aller. You are sinning away your 
mercies, sir.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is of that I came to speak,&quot; said David.  &quot;I have to submit to 
you, and through you to the Presbytery, proofs of a dreadful 
wickedness among professing Christians in that unhappy place.  
Will you be pleased to run your eye over these papers? You will 
see certain names subscribed as witnesses.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead began to read the depositions carelessly, as if he knew 
what to expect from them. Then his attention deepened and he 
wrinkled his forehead.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Hoots! What's this?&quot; he cried.  &quot;Ye were in the Wood? Ye saw this 
and that? Mr. Sempill, ye're not exempt from the charge of tampering 
with unlawful things.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I went there as God's servant.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nevertheless -- &quot;  He read on, and his brows darkened.  He finished, 
flung the bundle on the table, and looked at David with a troubled 
and uncertain eye.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Here's a bonny browst o' yill! You charge your chief elder with the 
sin of witchcraft -- a man of noted godliness, as I myself can 
testify -- and you conjoin in the libel five women who are unknown 
to me.  What is your evidence, I ask? Your am een, at a time when you 
were in no condition to see clear, and forbye you were on the top 
of a tree, and it was in the mid of the night.  You have no corroboration.  
But I pretermit the women and come to Chasehope. You have cherished 
a suspicion of him since Beltane, says you, when you were present 
in the Wood.  And what, I ask, did you there at that season, Mr Sempill?  
I opine that your am conduct wants some explanation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That I can give,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have further the evidence of the man Andrew Shillinglaw, and the 
plot you prepared against Chasehope.  Man, I see nothing in your 
red cock's feathers or your hennyseed, as you call it. The well is 
tainted, so how can you look for pure water?  Your Reiverslaw is 
notoriously a winebibber and a ruffler and a despiser of ordinances. 
What hinders that he should be also a lecar? The cock's feathers may 
all the time have been in his pouch, and he may have played some prank 
at Chasehope with the stinkin' oil.  You have the witness of the herds, 
says you, but it's easy enough to begowk two landward simpletons. 
Your case will not hold water, sir, before any competent court, and 
Reiverslaw, your principal abettor, stands suspect. As the old 
owercome has it, he suld bide still that has riven breeks.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead spoke with a weighty assurance, and as David looked at 
his shrewd coarse face he felt a sudden helplessness.  It would be 
hard to convince a tribunal so prejudiced -- in whose ears, perhaps, 
Chasehope had already spoken.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My advice to you,&quot; the voice went on, &quot;is to get you home and let 
the steer settle.  There's nothing in these papers that calls for 
action by the Presbytery -- just hearsay and idle fama, the visions 
of an excited young man and the lees of a drucken reprobate.  No 
doubt you mean well, but I will homologate no course which fastens 
evil on a man whose righteousness has been abundantly proven. Have 
mind of the virtue of charity, sir, which thinketh no evil.  I 
opine that you're ower ready to think evil.  Bring before me wise -- 
like evidence and I will be prompt to act, but not these havers.&quot;
</para>
<para>
So far he had spoken with a kind of rough good-humour, but now his 
voice became harsh.
</para>
<para>
&quot;They tell me you have conducted no public worship these last two 
Sabbaths,&quot; he said fiercely.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I will not lead my folk into deeper hypocrisy,&quot; said David.  &quot;I will 
not preach or pray in the kirk till I also denounce the sinners, and 
that I purpose to do on the next Lord's day;&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot; You will do no such thing,&quot; said Mr Muirhead sternly.  &quot;I, your 
elder, and father in God, forbid you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I must follow my own conscience,&quot; said David. &quot;I am as convinced of 
the abominations of the Wood and of the persons that partake in them 
as that I am sitting with you here in Kirk Aller this August morning.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You would add contumacy to your folly,&quot; the other roared.  &quot;You would 
sow dissension in the Kirk when it is necessary to set a stout front 
against the Kirk's oppressors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That,&quot; said David firmly, &quot;is mere carnal policy.  In the name of God, 
whose purity is a flame of fire, would you let gross wickedness go 
unchecked because it may knock a splinter off the Kirk? I tell you it 
were better that the Kirk should be broken to dust and trampled underfoot 
than that it should be made a cloak for sin.  I refuse to obey you,  
Mr. Muirhead.  Next Sabbath  I will make every wall in Woodilee dirl 
under my accusation.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The two men were on their feet, David white with wrath, and the 
face of the other mottled with a like passion.   You rebellious 
schismatic,&quot; the minister of Kirk Aller cried, when a knock at the 
door called both to a sense of the proprieties.
</para>
<para>
It was the minister's man, who entered with a letter held reverently 
with the tips of his fingers.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A despatch, sir, from Embro.  Brocht this moment by a mounted messenger, 
wha wouldna stay for meat, but maun post off down the water.&quot;
</para>
<para>
When the man retired Mr Muirhead, still standing and puffing heavily, 
broke the seal.  He seemed to have trouble with the contents, for he 
moved his spectacles, took them off and rubbed them, and then re-read 
the missive.  His eyes stared, his face paled, and then at the last 
perusal reddened again.  He turned to David in a flame of temper.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Kirk must suffer for you and your like,&quot; he cried.  &quot;The Lord 
had prepared an abundant mercy whilk has been denied us because of 
the hardness of our hearts. Wae's me, wae's me for the puir sheep 
that have sic faithless shepherds! The auld and the bauld and the 
leal-hearted must go down because of conceited halflings like you 
that are Achans in the camp.&quot;
</para>
<para>
''You speak in riddles, sir, said David, whose sudden anger had gone 
at the spectacle of this strange transformation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's a riddle you'll read or you're a month older in letters of 
blood and fire. . . .  Riddle, says you? The riddle is why the 
Almighty should give our covenanted Kirk sic a back-cast of His 
hand, and to that you maybe ken the answer.  Our deliverance has 
most lamentably miscarried, and our bondage is waxed more grievous.  
Get out of my sight, for I must be about the Lord's business, and 
there will be no rest for Mungo Muirhead this many a day.  You have 
defied me, but wait on and see if you can defy your Creator.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have had bad tidings?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Bad, says you? Ay, bad for God's people and God's Kirk, but they're 
maybe blithe tidings for a schismatic like yourself. You'll maybe 
get Lefthanded Coll and his Irishry to purge your parish and burn the 
honest folk with whilk you are unworthily blessed.  Awa to Montrose, 
man, for yon''s the lad for you!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Montrose!&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, Montrose. Know that yesterday at Kilsyth yon whelp of Satan was 
permitted to lay low the Covenant's banner, and rout the godly.  
This word I have gotten is a scribe from Argyll on his road to 
Berwick, written from a boat at the Queen's Ferry.  This very day 
it's like that Antichrist will be hammering on the gates of Glasgow.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XII</chapnum>
<title>The Man With The Squint</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THE</emph> sermon which was to indict by name the sinners was not preached 
to the kirk of Woodilee the next Sabbath.
</para>
<para>
For the day after his return from Kirk Aller a post reached the manse 
from the Pleasance of Edinburgh which in an hour set David on his 
horse riding hard for the capital. There was plague in the city and 
his father was sick of it. It was the plague in a new form, for 
death did not come quickly; the patient lay for days in a high 
fever, afflicted with violent headaches and shiverings and a contraction 
of muscles and nerves, and then, in nine cases out of ten, passed 
into a rigor which meant death. There was no eruption on the bodies, 
and the physicians were at a loss in the matter of treatment. But 
it was scarcely less deadly than the older visitations, and the 
dead-bell rang hourly and the dead-cart rumbled day and night 
on the cobbles.
</para>
<para>
David found the old man conscious, but very clear that he was near 
his end.  The family doctor had bled him copiously, applied leeches 
to his head, and brought a horrid regiment of drugs and vomitories. 
The son pled with his father to receive them patiently.  &quot;God works 
by means,&quot; he told him, &quot;as Christ cured the blind man with clay 
and spittle, and what remedy could be more rude than these?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Aye, but it was the Lord that laid them on, Davie,&quot; said the patient, 
&quot;and no an auld wife like McGlashan.&quot; So he sent the physician packing, 
and engaged a new one, a certain young Crosbie from the Monk's Vennel, 
who had studied in France and had at least the merit of letting a 
sick man die in peace.  Instead of smothering the patient under 
bedclothes, he kept him lightly covered, ordered the window to be 
open day and night, and let him drench his system with small ale. 
It is likely that under any treatment the old man would have died, 
for he was in his seventy-fourth year and had long been ailing, 
and the plague only speeded the decay of age. But under the new 
regimen his last days were less of a martyrdom. His head remained 
clear and he could speak with his son -- chiefly of his mother 
and his childhood.
</para>
<para>
David lodged not in the city, but in the village of Liberton, and 
walked in daily to his father's bedside~ He read the Scriptures to 
him and prayed with him, as his duty demanded, but he felt a certain 
shyness at inquiring into his father's state towards God. Nor was the 
old man communicative. &quot;I've made my peace lang syne,&quot; he said, &quot;and 
I read my title clear, so there's no need of death-bed wark for me.&quot; 
But he was full of anxiety for his son. &quot;You've chosen a holy calling, 
Davie lad, and I'm blithe to think you've got a downsetting in our 
calf-country. Man, there were Sempills in the mill o' the Roodfoot 
since the days of Robert Bruce. But the ministry in these days is 
a kittle job, for the preachers are ower crouse, and the Kirk has 
got its heid ower high. . . . What's come o' this Mont-rose they 
crack about? . . . Keep you humble before the Lord; my son, 
for Heaven's yett is a laigh yett.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He died peacefully on the third day of September and David had a busy 
week settling his affairs -- the sale of the business and the household 
effects and the payment of bequests to servants and distant kin. Hour 
after hour he sat with the lawyers, for there was a considerable estate, 
and to his surprise he found himself with worldly endowments such as 
few ministers of the Kirk possessed.  There was money at the 
goldsmith's, and in his lawyer's boxes deeds and sasines and bonds 
on heritable property, and there would be more to come. His doer, 
a little old snuffy attorney of the name of Macphail, grew sententious 
as the business drew to its close. &quot;You've both the treasure on earth, 
Mr David, and the treasure in Heaven, and it's a pleasing thought 
that they's alike well-guided. Anent the latter, moth cannot corrupt, 
saith the Word, nor thieves break through and steal, and anent the former 
a moth will no do muckle ill to a wheen teugh sheepskins, and it would 
be a clever thief that got inside Georgie Gight's strong-room in the 
Canongate where your bonds are deposited. So you can keep an easy 
mind, Mr David, while you wrastle for souls in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Those were strange days both for death in a bed and for conducting 
business, for the stricken city was the prey of wild fears. Scarcely 
a traveller entered her infected precincts, but rumour was as busy 
as the east wind in May. The battle of Kilsyth had worked a revolution 
in Scotland.  Glasgow had surrendered and welcomed the conqueror, with 
enthusiasm for his person and largesse for his soldiers. The shires 
and the burghs were falling over each other in their haste to make 
submission. Edinburgh had been summoned, and a delegation of the town 
council had gone out beyond Corstorphine to capitulate to the young 
Master of Napier.  The imprisoned Lords went free from the Tolbooth; 
David saw the sight-pallid men shivering with prison ague; only the 
Castle still held for the Covenant. Word came that the King had made 
Montrose Captain-general of all Scotland, and that soon the victorious 
army would move towards the Border; already, on the haugh of Bothwell 
by Clyde side, Sir Archibald Primrose had read the royal commission 
to the troops. A summons had gone out for a Parliament to be held 
presently in Glasgow -- &quot; for settling religion and peace,&quot; said the 
proclamation, &quot;and freeing the oppressed subjects of those insufferable 
burdens they have groaned under this time bygone.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The ministers who walked the Edinburgh causeway wore gloomy faces. 
David had a sight of Mr. Muirhead, who sternly inquired of him what 
he did in the city. &quot;I have come to bury my father,&quot; he replied. &quot;If 
he died in the hope and the promise,&quot; was the answer, &quot;he has gotten 
a happy deliverance, for the vials of wrath are opened against this 
miserable land.&quot;  It was a phrase repeated like a pass-word by others 
of his ministerial brethren, and he replied with a becoming gravity, 
but he could not in his heart feel any great sorrow. For he remembered 
the face of the groom at Calidon, and he wondered how that face looked 
as a conqueror. Pride, he was assured, would not be in it. . . . News 
came that Montrose was at Cranstoun and moving by Gala Water to the 
Border. For a moment David had a crazy desire to follow him, to be in 
his presence, for he had a notion that if he could but have speech again 
with that young man the shadows and perplexities might lighten from 
his mind.
</para>
<para>
At last he set off homeward, and under the rowans at Carlops brig he 
read a printed paper which had been circulated in the Edinburgh streets -- 
torn across and cast away by many, but by others cherished and pondered. 
It was a manifesto of Montrose from the camp at Bothwell, and it set 
out his purpose.  In it were the very words used by the groom that 
night at Calidon. The nobles had destroyed &quot;lawful authority and the 
liberty of the subject,&quot; the Kirk had coerced men into a blind obedience 
worse than Popery. He took up arms, he; said, for pure religion, 
&quot;the restoration of that which our first reformers had&quot;; for the King, 
and the establishment of a central authority: for the plain people and 
the &quot; vindication of our nation from the base servitude of subjects.&quot; 
He confuted the; timorous souls &quot;who can commit nothing to God.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He repudiated the charge of blood-guiltiness, for he had never &quot;shed 
the blood of any but of such as were sent forth to shed our blood and 
to take our lives.&quot; And he concluded by pointing to the miracles that 
faith had wrought: &quot;What is done in the land, it may sensibly seem 
to be our Lord's doing, in making a handful to overthrow multitudes.&quot; 
The words came to David with a remembered sound, like the echo of 
a speaking voice. Could this man be the bloody Amalekite of the Kirk's 
denouncing?  On which side, he asked his perplexed soul. did the 
God of Israel fight, for this man's faith was not less confident 
than that of the minister of Kirk Aller?
</para>
<para>
Isobel received him with the reverential gloom which the Scots 
peasantry wear on an occasion of death.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So it's a' bye, sir. We got the word from the Embro carrier, but I 
wasna looking for ye yet awhile, for we heard ye were like to be 
thrang wi' the lawyer bodies.  . . He just slippit awa, for how could 
an auld man stand out against yon wan-chancy pestilence? It's a gait 
we maun a' gang, and he would be weel prepared Godward, and at ease 
in his mind about warldly things, for they tell me he was brawly set 
up wi' gear. And there's just yoursel' to heir it, Mr David? . . . 
But shame fa' me to speak o' gear in this sorrowful dispensation, for 
a faither is a faither though he live ayont the threescore and ten 
years whilk is our allotted span.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He died as he lived, Isobel, a humble but confident Christian. I 
think he was pleased to know that I was settled in his forebears' 
countryside.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He wad be that, honest man. Fine I mind o' your gudesire, and mony 
a nievefu' o' meal I gat from him when I was a bairn. But I'm concerned
for yoursel', Mr David, and fearfu' lest ye have got a smittal o' 
the pestilence. Ye're fine and ruddy, but there's maybe fever in your 
veins. Drink off this wersh brew, sir-it was my mither's way to 
caller the blood -- just kimmilk boiled wi' soorocks.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David asked concerning the parish.
</para>
<para>
&quot; Woodilee!&quot; Isobel cried.  &quot;If Embro's a stricken bit, it's nae waur 
than this parochine. For the last se'en days it's been naething but 
wars and rumours o' war. Ye'll hae heard o' how Montrose has guidit 
our auld Sion, and now we've Antichrist himsel' on our waterside. Ay, 
he's no twenty miles across the hills, campin' with his Edomites 
somewhere on Yarrow, as welcome as snaw in hairst. The lads and lasses 
are a' fleyed out o' the sheilin's, for the Yen o' Douglas -- weary 
fa' him ! -- and his proud horsemen are drovin' dwer frae Clyde like craws 
in the back-end. We canna move man nor bestial, and folk winna ride 
the roads except in a pack, and they tell me that Amos Ritchie wi' 
his auld firelock was sent for to convoy the minister o' Bold to 
Kirk Aller. The weans daurna keek past the doorstane, and Johnnie 
Dow winna gang his rounds, and he's been lyin' fou at Lucky Weir's 
thae three days. There's nae wark done in a' ,Woodilee, nor like to 
be done -- it's a dowg's life we've gotten, muckle ease and 
muckle hunger.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But the place has suffered no harm?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No yet, forbye a wedder o' Richie Smail's that Douglas's dragons 
brandered and ate yestreen at the Red Swire. But ony moment a vial 
may be opened. -- What hinders Montrose to come rauvagin' this airt? 
for if it's meat and drink he's seeking for his sodgers, Woodilee is 
a bien bit aside yon bare Yarrow hills. Forbye Calidon's no 
that far, and they tell me that our auld hirplin' laird, wha suld 
rather be thinkin' o' his latter end, is high in the command o' 
the ungodly, and him and yon sweerin' Tam Purves will be rampin' 
like lions in their pride. Hech, sir, our kindly folk are in the 
het o' the furnace, in whilk they will either be brunt to an ass, 
or come out purified as fine gowd. . . .  But what am I claverin' 
here for, when ye're wantin' your denner? It's little I hae for ye, 
for our meal ark is nigh toom, and there's no a kain hen left 
on the baulks.&quot;
</para>
<para>
That night David sat long in his study. It was now the sixteenth 
day of September, and the sultry weather, which had fostered the 
plague, was sharpening towards autumn. He had returned from his 
father's death-bed in something of the mood in which he had first 
entered the manse.  The confusion in the State was to him only a 
far-off rumour; he was not greatly concerned whether Covenant or 
King was a-top, for he had no assurance as to which had the right 
on its side. But he longed for peace, that he might be about his 
proper business, for the charge of Woodilee lay heavy on his soul.  
The wickedness against which he had raged seemed now to him as pitiful 
as it was terrible, a cruel seduction of Satan's against which he 
must contend, not with-out pity for the seduced.  Charity filled 
him, and with his new tenderness came hope. He could not fail in 
the struggle before him-God would not permit his little ones to 
be destroyed.
</para>
<para>
Had he not forgotten the minister in the crusader? His books caught 
his eye -- he had touched them little during the summer. What had 
become of that great work, Sempill on Isaiah? He pulled out his 
manuscript notes and for a little was happy in their contemplation. . . . 
The day's ride had been long and the sun had been hot. His head 
nodded, then dropped on his arm, and he fell asleep.
</para>
<para>
He awoke to a sound below the window.  The manse stood at the extreme 
southern end of the kirkton, beyond the kirk, a long bowshot from 
the nearest dwelling, which was Robb the bellman's. To the west of 
it lay the broomy slopes of the Hill of Deer, to the east the glen 
of the burn and Windy-ways hill, and to the south the rough meadows 
through which the road dipped to the Wood. It was a lonely spot, as 
Isobel often testified, and after night fall no soul came near it even 
a traveller on the highway did not pass within half a mile.
</para>
<para>
His study window opened on the garden, and the sound seemed to come 
from someone knocking gently on the back door. David, still confused 
with sleep, took his candle, and descended the stairs.  Isobel had 
heard nothing -- for the muffled sound of her snores came from the 
press-bed behind the kitchen.
</para>
<para>
. . . Again the soft knocking came, this time with a more insistent 
sound. In some trepidation David unbolted the door, telling himself 
that it might be a summons to attend a dying parishioner.
</para>
<para>
There was little moon and a thick autumn haze covered the ground.  
Rising out of; it, like ships out of the water, were huge figures, 
and he saw that they were mounted men. One of them sat his horse, 
and held the other beasts; one was on his feet and supported a third 
who seemed very weary.
</para>
<para>
David raised his candle, and saw the figure of the standing man. The 
face was dark with sun, but darker under the eyes with fatigue; the 
dress, once rich and splendid, was both mired and torn; and one hand 
was wrapped in a blood-stained kerchief.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Do I speak with the minister of Woodilee?&quot; the man asked, and at the 
first word David knew him. That voice had been echoing all the year 
in his chamber of memory.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am the. minister,&quot; was his reply. &quot;In what can I serve my Lord 
Marquis?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The face relaxed into a smile, which made it for the moment gay in 
spite of the heavy eyes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have not forgotten me? Nor have I forgotten you, and therefore 
I come to you in sore need to beg a charity. I do not doubt but you 
are of the opposite faction, but I know also that you are a faithful 
minister of Christ, whose custom was to do good to His enemies. Will 
you give shelter to this wounded comrade of mine, and thereby save 
the life of one whom you consorted with a year back in Calidon?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But this is but a poor manse, my lord. Why do you come here when 
Calidon is so nigh? &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Alas!  Calidon is no port for me or mine in this storm. Know, sir, 
that this day my army has been beaten on the Yarrow haughs and utterly 
scattered.  Before morning Leslie's troopers will be knocking at 
Calidon door. I myself am a fugitive, and there is no safety till I 
cross the Highland line. But this comrade of mine has. a broken leg, 
besides other hurts, and it is impossible that he should ride further. 
If he does, he will impede us and we shall be taken. But where can I 
leave him, for I am in an unfriendly country, and if he is captured 
it will be the gallows for an honest fellow? I bethought me that you 
were minister of this parish, and that your heart was not likely to 
be steeled to common humanity, and a manse is the one place that the 
pursuit will miss. Will you take him and let him lie hid till the 
hunt passes? After that he will fend for himself, for he is an old 
soldier of the German wars.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He has done no evil . . .
</para>
<para>
&quot;None save what I have done myself. He has drawn the sword in a brave 
cause which this day has sorely miscarried. But, sir, it is not of 
politics I speak, but of charity. For the sake of Christ's mercy, I 
beseech you not to refuse.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is a heavy charge, my lord, but I cannot say you nay.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Montrose shifted the burden of the wounded man to David's arm. &quot;Farewell, 
Mark,&quot; he whispered. &quot;The good cause is down but not dead, old friend. 
You know where to get news of me.&quot; Then he kissed his cheek and 
gave his hand to David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;May God bless and reward you, sir. I dare not linger. We will take 
the third horse with us, for it would be too kenspeckle in your stable. 
Think kindly of me, whatever my fate, as I think tenderly of you, 
and pray for a lonely man whose feet are set on a long road.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The next moment the riders had disappeared in the fog. David stood in 
a dream, for he would have given worlds to recall the speaker. His voice, 
the sight of his face, had brought back tenfold the longing to be with 
him which had haunted him after the Calidon meeting.  The man had been 
a conqueror and was now a fugitive, but earthly fortunes had no meaning 
for such an one.  Those calm eyes would look on triumph and disaster 
alike unperturbed.
</para>
<para>
He was roused by the wounded man going limp in his arms, and he saw 
that he had fainted. He carried him up the steep stairs -- Isobel's 
snoring still making a chorus in the background -- and laid him on the 
bedstead in the guest-room. The bed was not made up, and it was clear 
that he must wake Isobel. As the man's head drooped on the bolster 
David turned his candle on it. The face was grimed and blood-stained, 
but there was no mistaking the features: it was the tall trooper with 
the squint whom he had once guided to Calidon.
</para>
<para>
David sought the kitchen and hammered at the door of the press-bed.  
The snoring ceased and presently a scared and muffled voice demanded 
what was the trouble.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Get up, woman,&quot; David ordered. &quot;There's a sick man here that has 
need of you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Three minutes later Isobel appeared, shawled and nightcapped.  &quot;Keep us, 
Mr David, is't yoursel' that's seeck?&quot; she wailed. &quot;I didna like the look 
ye the day and -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
He cut her short.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A friend of mine has had a mischance. His leg is broken and I think 
there is other trouble. Listen, Isobel. . . . The man is one of 
Montrose's soldiers and Montrose''s army has suffered defeat.  If he 
is found here by the pursuing troops, he will die. He is my friend 
and I would save him. You and I must nurse him between us, and no word 
of his presence here must pass these doors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mercy on us! A malignant!&quot; the old woman exclaimed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;And my friend,&quot; said David curtly. &quot;If I think it consistent with 
Christian duty to save his life, so well may you. You and I have no 
quarrel with stricken men. I appeal to the kind heart that is in
you and your regard for me, and I do not think I will appeal in vain.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Your wull be done,&quot; said Isobel. &quot;Whaur is the body? See and I'll get 
blankets and pillows, for the bed hasna been made up -- this sax months.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The sight of the figure on the bedstead, his quilted and brocade coat, 
his light cuirass, his long untanned boots much scratched and frayed, 
his feathered hat beside him on the floor, caused Isobel to shrink.
</para>
<para>
&quot;A ramping Edomite,&quot; she said.  &quot;Look at the long hair and the 
murdering sword, stained nae doot with the bluid of the saints. 
Your friend, says you, sir?  Weel, he's been walkin' ither than 
Gospel roads, I can see brawly, and gin he hadna been amang the craws 
he wadna hae been shot. . . . But the puir chield's in a dwam! 
Haste ye, sir, and help me off wi' thae Babylonish garments, and 
that weskit o' aim-what for sud folk gang to the smith for cleading 
and no to a wabster? And stap his swird aneath the bed, for I'm 
feared to look on't.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man half recovered consciousness as they stripped off his coat 
and cuirass, and when it came to the breeches he groaned aloud. So 
they left them on him and slit the boot on the broken leg. It was a 
clean break of the shin, and Isobel, who showed some skill in the 
business, set the leg, and bound it in firm splints made of the staves 
of an old cask. Then they searched for further damage and found that 
he was suffering from little except an extreme fatigue. There was a 
pike wound in his shoulder, which Isobel bathed and bandaged, and a 
pistol-ball had been turned by the mail he wore and had left a bruised 
rib. By the time the grime and blood were washed from his face he 
had got his senses sufficiently back to find his voice.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You are the minister?&quot; he asked.  &quot;I am crippled, as you see, sir -- 
an accursed fail-dyke on Minchmoor did it -- and you'll not be wanting 
this kind of merchandise long on your hands. A drink and six hours' 
sleep will set me up, and I'll make shift to take the road. Let me 
bide here till the morn's night and you'll be rid of me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You'll not be fit to move for a week. You can sleep here securely. 
You're in a friend's charge.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The sick man was an old soldier who took life as it came. After he had 
drunk a bowl of gruel laced with usquebagh he turned on his side and 
fell asleep. David and Isobel went down to the kitchen and with the 
candle between them looked at each other with something like consternation.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We must burn those clothes,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Na, na. I'll make a bundle o' them and hide them in the cupples. It's 
braw raiment, gin it were cleaned. But, oh, sir, this is a bonny kettle 
of fish! Who wad hae thocht to see such wark in the manse of Woodilee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is a work of mercy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's some wad call it by anither name. There's some wad say it was a 
turnin' back from the gude fight and a faintin' and a backslidin' on the 
road. I'd be feared to think what yon thrawn minister o' Bold wad call 
it, but it wadna be mercy. He'd be for savin' the puir lad as Jael the 
wife of Heber the Kenite saved Sisera.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I will be party to no such wickedness, which would be an offence against 
human charity as well as against the law of Christ.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, charity. I'm blithe to hear ye speak the word, sir.&quot;  Isobel's 
eyes had an inclination to twinkle.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I must follow the guiding of my own conscience. But I would not 
constrain you. If the thing offends you, I will even now, before it 
is light, carry the man to the Greenshiel . . . 
&quot;A bonny gait that Wad be. The avenger of blood will be chappin' ony 
hour at Richie's door and there's nae space at the Greenshiel to hide 
a mouse. Na, na, I'm no denyin' your duty, Mr David. There never was 
woman yet, young or auld, that was ill-set to a sodger, forbye yon randy 
Jael, wha maun hae been an unco trial to her man. And the lad upbye 
seems a decent body, though he skellies [*] sair wi' his left ee. I'se 
do your bidding, sir, and I hope it winna be accounted to me for sin.
</para>
<footnote>
* squints.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Can we keep him here without anyone. knowing of it?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Brawly.  The folk o' Woodilee are sweir to come near the manse thae 
days. They're feared o' the glower they micht get from you.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But if Leslie's troopers arrive and offer to search -- ?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll search them! I'se warrant I'd be doun on them with my ten fingers 
like a gled on poutry. Isobel Veitch will learn the godless loons to 
mak' free with the house o' a man o' God. And mind, sir, if onybody 
speirs, ye maun brazen like a pack-man. Bleeze awa' about the needcessity 
o' speed in the guid cause and send them on their ways to Clyde, and 
maybe ye'll be spared the sin o' actual leem.
</para>
<para>
&quot;If need be I will not shrink from the false word, which will be 
forgiven in the cause of mercy.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Fine, sir.' Isobel grinned appreciatively on him; for this confederacy 
seemed to have ended the estrangement between servant and master. &quot;There's
a man ahint the minister in you, whilk is mair than ye can say for the 
feck o' the Presbytery.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And, meantime, I must be up and doing.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye'll awa' to your bed and sleep out your sleep. What's the need o' 
hurry when the body's leg is still to set. As my auld mither used to say, 
naething suld be done in haste but grippin' a flea. . . . But I'll look 
out some o' your auld garments, for our friend will hae to cast his 
braw coat and put on homespun or he wins forth o' Woodilee,&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XIII</chapnum>
<title>White Magic</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THE</emph> man upstairs slept for a round of the clock and then awoke and 
clamoured for food.  Isobel reported that he was cured of his 
weakness and that the pike wound in his shoulder was no more than 
a scratch. &quot;Forbye his leg, he's as weel as you or me, and he 
has the hunger o' a cadger's powny. It was an awesome sicht to 
see him rivin' my bannocks. He's speirin' to see ye, for nae doubt 
he has muckle on his mind.&quot; The old woman was in the best of tempers, 
and her wizened face was puckered in a secret smile, for she and 
her master were now restored to friendship as partners in conspiracy.
</para>
<para>
David found his guest clad in one of his own bedgowns, the hue of 
health once more on his unshaven cheeks. His first request was for 
a razor and for shears, and when Isobel had shorn his hair and he 
had got rid of a three-days' beard, it was a head of a notable power 
and dignity that rested on the pillow. The high-boned, weather-beaten 
face, the aquiline nose, the long pointed chin were no common trooper's, 
and the lines about mouth and eyes were like the pages of a book 
wherein the most casual could read of ripe experience.  The brown 
eyes were dancing and mirthful, and the cast in the left one did not 
so much mar the expression as make it fantastically bold and daring. 
Here was one who had lived in strange places and was not used to fear.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's a sore burden I've brought on you, Mr Sempill,&quot; he cried, &quot;and 
it's you that's the good Samaritan. It was my lord's notion that I 
should throw myself on your compassion, for it's a queer thing, I own, 
for a cavalier to be seeking a hiding-place in a manse, though Mark 
Kerr has had some anco ports in his day. I mind in Silesia --  But 
there's no time for soldiers' tales. You'll be wanting me out of this 
as soon as I can put foot to ground, and it's blithe I'll be to humour 
you. My leg is setting brawly, says that auld wife who is my chirurgeon, 
and in less than a week I'll be fit to go hirpling on my road.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That will be to walk into the fire,&quot; said David. &quot;If Montrose's army 
is scattered throughout the hills, there will be such a hunt cried 
as will leave no sheiling unsearched.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Just so. I'll not deny that this countryside is unhealthy for folk 
like me. You'll be well advised to bury or burn the clothes I had 
on last night, and if you can lend me a pair of grey breeks and an 
auld coat, I'll depart with a lighter mind.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You'll be for the sea and the abroad?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No me. It's at the coast that they'll be seeking me, and a wise man 
that's in trouble will go where he's no expected. I think I'll 
just bide hereaways.
</para>
<para>
Put me in a frieze jacket and I'll defy Davy Leslie himself to see Mark 
Kerr, the gentleman -- cavalier of Mackay's, in the douce landward body 
that cracks of sheep and black nowt. You'll maybe have me in your 
congregation, Mr Sempill.  I'm thinking of taking a tack of Crossbasket.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David stared. &quot;Are you mad?&quot; he asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not so -- only politic, as is the way of us soldiers of the Low Germany. 
One of my profession must think well into the future if he's to keep his 
craig unraxed. I've had some such escapado in mind ever since I travelled 
north a year syne, and I've had a word on the matter with Nicholas 
Hawkshaw, so when the glee'd [*] auld farmer body from Teviotside seeks 
the tack of Crossbasket the lawyer folk in Edinburgh will be prepared for 
him.  Nicholas was like me-he kenned fine that our triumph in the North 
was fairy gold that is braw dollars one day and the next a nieve-full 
of bracken.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* squinting.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Where is the laird of Calidon?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;By a merciful dispensation we left him sick at Linlithgow, and Nicholas, 
being an eident soul, had a boat trysted at the Borrowstounness and by 
this time doubtless will be beating down the Porth on his way to a kinder 
country. He'll be put to the horn, like many another honest gentleman, 
and his braw estates may be roupit. Thank the Lord, I have nothing to 
lose, for I'm a younger son that heired little but a sword.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A month ago,&quot; said David, &quot;Montrose was lord of all Scotland. You tell 
me that everything has been lost in one battle, and that you and others 
were confident of its loss. Man, how did he succeed with such a rabble 
of the half-hearted behind him?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I wouldna just call it half-hearted.  We won because James Graham is 
the greatest captain since ~ Gustavus went to God at Lutzen, and 
because he has a spirit that burns like a pure flame. But he did 
not ken this land of Scotland as me and Nicholas kenned it. He had a 
year of miracles, for that happened which was clean beyond all sense 
and prevision, but miracles have an ugly trick of stopping just when 
they are sorest needed. . . . A year syne there were three men on 
Tayside, Montrose and Inchbrakie and me, and that was the King's 
army. By the mercy of Providence we fell in with Alastair Macdonald 
on the Atholl braes, and got a kind of muster at our back. . . . 
There's no Hieland blood in you, Mr Sempill? No? Well, it's a very 
good kind of blood in its way, but it's like yon Hieland burns, 
either dry as the causeway or a roaring spate. It's grand in a battle, 
but mortal uncertain in a campaign, if you follow me-and that James 
should have held it in leash till he had routed Argyll and Bailne 
and Hurry and brought the Kirk and Estates to their knees is a proof 
of a genius for war that Gustavus never bettered.  But for conquering 
Scotland and keeping the conquest fixed -- na, na! Hielands will never 
hold down Lowlands for long, and that Lowland support we reckoned 
on was but a rotten willow wand. My lord deceived himself, and it 
was not for me to enlighten him, me that had witnessed so many 
portents. So we kept our own thoughts-Nicholas and me -- and indeed we 
had half a hope that a faith which had already set the hills louping 
might perchance remove the muckle mountains.  But I tell you, sir, 
when we marched for the Borders I had a presage of calamity on me as 
black as a thunder-cloud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But you had the army that won Kilsyth?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Not a third of it. Yonder on Bothwell haughs it melted away like a 
snow-wreath. Macdonald-he is Sir Alastair now and a Captain-general, 
and proud of it as an auld gander-must march off with the feck of 
his Irishry to Argyll to settle some private scores with Clan 
Diarmaid. The Gordons took the dorts [*] a plague on their thrawn 
heids -- and Aboyne and his horse went off in a tirrivee. James 
looked for a Lowland rising, for, says he, the poor folk for whom 
I fight are weary of the tyranny of greedy lairds and presumptuous 
ministers.  If so, they are ower weary to show it. What can be done 
with lads that grovel before a Kirk that claims the keys of Heaven 
and Hell? . . . If that sounds blasphemy, sir, you'll forgive a 
broken man that is Unlocking his heart and cannot wale [**] his 
words. . . Forbye, the Irish were like a millstone round our necks, 
for what profit was it to plead that Munro used them in Ireland for 
an honest cause? To the Lowland herds and cotters they were murdering 
savages, and the man that had them on his side was condemned from 
the beginning. The sons of Zeruiah were too strong for us.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
	* sulks.	** pick.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;Is it true that they fight barbarously?&quot; David asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So, so. I'll not deny that they're wild folk, but they havena 
your Kirk's taste for murder in cold blood. There were waur 
things done in Methven Wood than were done at Aberdeen, and 
it's like that Davy Leslie is now giving shorter shrift to the 
poor creatures than ever they gave to the Campbells in
Lorne and Lochaber. . . .  We'll let that be, for there was never 
an army that did not accuse its enemies of barbarity, and the mere 
bruit of it on our side was enough to keep the Lowlands behind steekit 
doors. There were some of the nobles that we counted on-my Lord Home, 
and my cousin Roxburghe, and the sly tod Traquair. James was in 
good heart at their promises, but I mistrusted the gentry and I was 
most lamentably justified, for when we were on Teviotside, where 
were my lords but in Leslie's camp ? -- prisoners, they said -- but 
willing refugees, as I kenned braw and well.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And the battle?&quot;
</para>
<para>
A spasm of pain passed over the other's face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It was not, properly speaking, a battle, but more in the nature of 
a surprise and a rout. We were encamped on Yarrow at the gate of 
the hills, for the coming of Davy Leslie had altered our plans and 
we were about to march westward to the Douglas lands. We were deceived 
by false intelligence-it was Traquair's doing, for which some day 
he will get my steel in his wame -- but I bitterly blame myself that 
an old soldier of the German wars was so readily outwitted and 
so remiss in the matter of outposts. . . . In the fog of the morning 
Davy was on us, and Douglas's plough-lads scattered like peesweeps. 
There were five hundred of O'Keen's Irish, and fivescore of Ogilvy's 
horse, and for three hours we held Davy's six thousand. These are 
odds that are just a wee bit beyond my liking, forbye that we had 
no meat in our bellies.  Brawly they fought, the poor lads, fought 
as I never saw men fight in the big wars-but what would you have?
 . . . It's no tale for me to tell, though it will be in my mind 
till my last breath.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He sighed, and for a moment his face was worn and old.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well and on, sir,&quot; he continued. &quot;The upshot is that the bravest 
of Scottish hearts is now, by God's grace, somewhere on the road 
to the Hielands, and the great venture is bye and done with, and 
here am I, a lameter, seeking sanctuary of a merciful opponent. 
If to shelter me does violence to your conscience, sir, say the 
word and I'll hirple off as soon as the night falls. You've given 
me bite and sup, like a good Christian, and suffered me to get my 
sleep, and you've no call to do more for a broken malignant.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My conscience is at ease anent succouring the wounded and saving a 
man's life. And I have no clearness about this quarrel of Montrose 
and the Kirk, and would therefore give it the go-by. But I will exact 
the promise that, if you come off safe, you will fight no more in 
Scotland. In that much I am bound to serve my calling.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You shall have the promise. Mark Kerr is for beating his sword into 
a ploughshare. What says the Word? 'His speech shall be of cattle' -- 
though now I come to think of it, that's from what you gentry call 
the Apocryphal books and think little of. . . . I'm one that has no 
great love for idleness on the broad of his back. Have you no a book 
to while away the hours? Anything but divinity-I've lost conceit of 
divinity these last months when I've been doing battle with the 
divines.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David furnished his guest with reading which was approved, and 
then went forth into Woodilee. The village made holiday, and every 
wife was at her doorstep.  A batch of troopers were drinking a 
tankard at Lucky Weir's, and saluted him as he passed. The people 
he met had an air of relief and good temper, and looked with a 
friendly eye on the minister, forgetting apparently the Lammas 
controversies and the shut kirk, for he was a representative of 
the winning cause.
</para>
<para>
Peter Pennecuik, sitting on a big stone outside the smithy, was the 
chief dispenser of tidings. His cheeks were swollen and his voice 
faltered with pride.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What for do ye bide in your tent, Mr Sempill, in this hour of our 
deliverance? They tell me that Mr Ebenezer of Bold has mounted his 
beast and ridden wi' the horsemen to harry the ungodly's retreat. 
Ay, and baith Chasehope and Mirehope have ta'en the road, for the 
haul land is fou' o' the wreck-age of the wicked, as the sands o' 
the Red Sea were strewed wi' the chariots o' Pharaoh. Our General 
Leslie is no ane to weaken in the guid cause, for there's word that 
his musketeers hae shot the Irish in rows on the Yarrow haughs, ilk 
ane aside his howkit grave, and there's orders that their women and 
bairns, whilk are now fleem' to the hills, are to be seized by such 
as meet wi' them, as daughters of Heth and spawn of Babylon, and be 
delivered up to instant judgment. Eh, sir, but the Lord has been 
exceeding gracious us-ward, and our griefs are maist marvellously 
avenged. . . .  Nae doot ye'll be proclaimin' a solemn fast for 
praise and prayer.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David ate his dinner with a perturbed mind, for if the countryside 
was being scoured for fugitives on this scale, it was unlikely that 
the manse would remain long inviolate. But Isobel reassured him. 
&quot;They wad never daur ripe the house, and for the lave I can speak 
them fair in the gate.&quot; In the afternoon he set out to walk to 
the Greenshiel, since the road would give him a far-away glimpse of 
Calidon. Autumn was already chilling the air, and the horizon was 
a smoky purple, the heather was faded, the bracken yellowing, the 
rowan trees plumed with scarlet, the corn in the valley already more 
gold than green. To David, in whose ear was still the gloating 
voice of Peter Pennecuik, the place seemed to smell of death.
</para>
<para>
At the Greenshiel he found death in bodily form. On the plot of turf 
outside the cottage half a dozen troopers stared from their saddles 
at something that lay on the ground. The men were mostly a little 
drunk, and had the air of a pack of terriers who have chased a cat 
and found it at bay-an air that was puzzled, angry, and irresolute.  
David strode towards them, and they gave place to him, somewhat 
shame-facedly.  On the turf lay a wretched draggle-tailed woman, 
her clothes almost torn off her back, her hair in elf-rocks, her bare 
feet raw and bloody.  Her face was emaciated and of an extreme pallor, 
her shrunken breast heaved convulsively, and there was blood on her 
neck. Richie Smail was on his knees attempting to force some milk 
between her teeth.  But her lips shut and unshut with her panting 
and the milk was spilled. Then her mouth closed in that rigor from 
which there is no unloosing.
</para>
<para>
Richie lifted his head and saw the minister.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She's bye wi't,&quot; he said.  &quot;Puir thing, puir thing! She ran in here 
like a hunted maukin.&quot; Then to the soldiers: &quot;Ye had surely little 
to dae, lads, to mishandle a starvin' lassie.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was no sign of compunction on the coarse faces of the troopers.
</para>
<para>
&quot;An Irish b-bitch,&quot; one hiccoughed.  &quot;What's the steer for a bawbee jo?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tam Porteous kittled her wi' his sword-point,&quot; said another.  &quot;Just 
in the way o' daffin, ye ken. She let out a skelloch and ran like 
the wund.&quot; The man put his hands to his sides and guffawed at the 
memory of it.
</para>
<para>
He did not laugh long, for David was on him like a tempest. The fuddled 
troopers heard a denunciation which did something to sober them by 
chilling their marrow. As men, as soldiers, as Christians, he left 
them no rag to cover them. &quot;You that fight in God's cause,&quot; he cried, 
&quot;and are worse than brute beasts! Get back to your styes, you swine, 
and know that for every misdeed the Lord will exact punishment a 
thousandfold.&quot; He was carried out of himself in his wrath. &quot;I see 
each one of you writhing on a coming field of battle, waiting to 
change the torments of the flesh for the eternal agonies of Hell. 
You are the brave ones -- your big odds gave you a chance victory 
over one that for a year hunted you and your like round the compass -- 
and you purge your manhood by murdering frail women.&quot;
</para>
<para>
It was not a discreet speech, and a sentence or two of it pierced 
through their befuddlement, but it sent them packing. They were too 
conscious of the power of a black gown in Leslie's army to dare to 
outface a minister. David marched homeward with his heart in a storm, 
to find an anxious Isobel.
</para>
<para>
&quot;These are dreidfu' days,&quot; she moaned.  &quot;We were telied that Montrose's 
sodgers were sons of Belial, but if they were waur than yon Leslie's 
they mann be the black Deil himsel'. Wae''s me, bluid is rinnin' 
like water on Aller side. Therc's awfu' tales comm' doun from the 
muirs o' wild riders and deid lasses -- ay, and deid bairns -- a' the 
puir clamjamphry that followed the Irish. It canna be richt, sir, to 
meet ae blood-guiltiness wi anither and a waur. And yon thrawn ettercap 
frae Bold ridin' wi' the sodgers and praisin' the Lord when anither 
waefu' creature perishes! And Chasehope, they tell me -- black be his 
fa' -- guidin' the sodgers to the landward buts-and-bens like a dowg 
after rattons! Catch yon lad frontin' an armed man, but he's like Jehu 
the son of Nimshi afore defenceless women.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David asked if anyone had been near the manse. &quot;That's what fickles [*] 
me. There's been naebody at the door, but there's been plenty snowkin' 
round. There's a gey guid watch keepit. And waur than that, there's 
sodgers in the clachan-ten men and ane they ca' a sairgent at Lucky 
Weir's. I heard routin' as I gaed by the kirkton, and, judging by the 
aiths, there's sma' differ between them that fechts for Montrose and 
them that uphauds the Covenant.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* puzzles.
</footnote>
<para>
Next day the uneasiness of both increased. The place was thronged 
with troopers, among them the men whom David had denounced at the 
Greenshiel. It is probable that his hasty words had been reported, 
for dark looks followed him as he passed the ale-house.  Moreover, 
Isobel had news in the village that Leslie's main forces were even 
now moving towards Woodilee, and that the triumphant general himself 
would lodge in the village. Where would such lodging be found except 
in the manse? At any moment the guest-room and its contents might lie 
bare to hostile eyes.
</para>
<para>
By the afternoon David had come to a decision. The wounded man must 
at all costs be moved. But where?  Calidon would be as public 
as the street, and besides he had heard that a picket had been stationed 
there in case its laird came looking for shelter. . . .  The hills were 
too open and bare. Reiverslaw would be suspect-in any case its tenant 
babbled in his cups. . . . Then he had an inspiration. Why not 
Melanudrigill, for its repute would at ordinary times make it the 
perfect sanctuary? He would be a bold man, it was true, who sought 
a lair in its haunted recesses, but this Mark Kerr did not lack for 
stoutness of heart.  He found him yawning and extracting indifferent 
entertainment from a folio of Thuanus.
</para>
<para>
Kerr only grinned when he heard of the danger.. &quot;I might have guessed 
that the place would soon be hotching with Davy's troops. And maybe 
I'm to have Davy in bed aside me? Faith, I fear we wouldna agree, 
though I'll no deny that the man has a very respectable gift in war. . . .  
I must shift, you say, and indeed that is the truth of it, but 
hostelries are no that plenty in this countryside for one like me 
that's so highly thought of by his unfriends.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Melanudrigill was set before him, and he approved.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The big wood.  Tales of it have come down the water, but I've never 
paid much attention to clavering auld wives. . . .  There's black 
witchcraft, you say-you've seen it yourself? I care not a doit. There's 
just the one kind of warlock that frichts me, and that's a file of 
Davy Leslie's men. Find me a bed in a hidy-hole and some means of 
getting bite and sup till I can fend for myself, and I'll sit snug 
in Melanudrigill, though every witch coven in Scotland sat girning 
round me with the Deil playing the bagpipes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David was clear that he must be moved that night, but he was far from 
clear as to how it was to be done. He did not dare to take any other 
into the secret, not even Reiverslaw or Amos Ritchie, for hatred of 
Montrose was universal among the Lowland country folk. He and Isobel 
might make shift to get him to the Wood, for Isobel was a muscular 
old woman, but there was much to do besides that -- a bed to be found, 
food transported, some plan made for a daily visit. There was no 
help to be found in Woodilee.
</para>
<para>
And then he remembered Katrine Yester.
</para>
<para>
For a long time he would not admit the thought. He would not have 
the girl enter a place of such defilements. The notion sickened him 
and he put it angrily from him. . . . But he found that a new idea 
was growing in his mind. The Wood had been a nursery of evil, but 
might it not be purified and its sorceries annulled if it were used 
for an honest purpose? The thought of Mark Kerr, with his hard 
wholesome face and his mirthful eye, eating and sleeping in what 
had been consecrated to midnight infamies, seemed to strip from 
the place its malign aura. . . .  To his surprise, when he thought 
of Mark in the wood, he found that he could think of Katrine there 
also, without a consciousness of sacrilege. The man was her uncle's 
comrade-in-arms -- he was of the cause to which she herself was vowed
-- she was a woman and merciful-she was his only refuge. . . . 
Before the dusk fell he was on the road to Calidon.
</para>
<para>
He had expected to find a house garrisoned and dragooned, and had 
invented an errand of ministerial duty to explain his presence.  
He found instead a normal Calidon -- the evening bustle about
the gates, an open door, and Katrine herself taking the air in the 
pleasance beside the dovecot. She came towards him with bright 
inquiring eyes.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You have soldiers here?&quot; he asked breathlessly.
</para>
<para>
She nodded to a corner of the house which had been the shell of 
the old peel tower.
</para>
<para>
&quot;They are there -- three of them-since last night. They arrived drunk -- 
with two wretched women tied to their stirrups. . . . We were most 
courteous to them, and they were not courteous to us. So Jock Dodds 
wiled them into the place we call the Howlet's Nest and gave them 
usquebagh and strong ale till they dropped on the floor. They are 
prisoners and woke up an hour ago, but they may roar long and loud 
before a cheep is heard outside the Howlet's Nest, and the door 
is stout enough to defy an army.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But Leslie himself will be here. Other soldiers will come, and how 
will you explain your prisoners?
</para>
<para>
The girl laughed merrily. &quot;Trust Aunt Grizel. Two lone women -- violent 
and drunken banditti -- locking them up the only way-and then a spate 
of texts and a fine passage about soldiers of the good cause setting 
an ensample.  I will wager my best hawk that Aunt Grizel will talk 
down General Leslie and every minister in his train.  . . The women 
are safe in the garret, less hurt than frightened. The poor things 
talk only the Erse, and there's none about the town to crack with 
them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He told her of the midnight visit to the manse and the lame man left 
on his hands.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You saw him?&quot; she whispered. &quot;You saw the Lord Marquis. How did he 
look? Was he very weary and sorrowful?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He was weary enough, but yon face does not show sorrow. There's an ardour 
in it that burns up all weakness. He would continue to hope manfully 
though his neck were on the block.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Indeed that is true, and that is why I will not despair. When I heard 
the news of disaster I did not shed a single tear. . . .  Whom did he 
leave behind?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The tall man -- Mark Kerr is his name-who was in this house of yours 
a year back. Him that has a cast in his eye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But that is the Lord Marquis's most familiar friend,&quot; she cried. 
&quot;The occasion must be desperate which parts them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The occasion grows more desperate,&quot; he said, and told her of the 
need for instant removal. When he spoke of the Wood she showed no 
surprise.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where else so secret?&quot; she said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Dare you go into it?&quot; he asked. &quot;For unless I have your help the business 
is like to prove too hard for me.  I will confess that it sticks in my 
throat to stir one step myself into the gloom of the pines, when I ken 
what has been transacted there, and it sticks sorer to have you in 
that unholy place. But if this Kerr is to be sayed, there's need of 
us both. The man will have to be fed, and that would be done more 
easily from Calidon than from the manse.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Why, so it must be.  I have been pining for some stirring task and 
here it is to my hand. I will be your fellow-labourer, Mr David, and 
we begin this very night. For a mercy there is a small moon.
</para>
<para>
. . . No, Aunt Grizel shall not hear of it. I have the keys and can 
leave and enter the house as I choose. When the dusk comes and 
our guests in the Howlet's Nest are quiet from hoarseness, I will bid 
Jock Dodds carry certain plenishing to Paradise.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A little before midnight, when even the clamour of Lucky Weir's was 
still, three figures stole from the manse, after David by many 
reconnaissances had assured himself that the coast was clear. Montrose's 
erstwhile captain was dressed like a small farmer, in David's breeches 
and a coat that had once belonged to Isobel's goodman. He had a rude 
crutch with which he managed to keep up a good pace, having learnt 
the art, he said, during an escape from a patrol of Wallenstein's, 
which for greater security had manacled the prisoners in pairs leg 
to leg. Isobel prospected the road before him like a faithful dog, 
while David steadied him with his arm. In such fashion they crossed 
the Hill of Deer, and in a darkness lit only by the stars came to 
the glade called Paradise. There they found awaiting them a 
glimmering girl, at the sight of whom Isobel's fears broke loose, 
for she prayed in words not sanctioned by any kirk, and her prayer 
was for mercy from the Good Folk.
</para>
<para>
Kerr made an attempt at a bow. &quot;Mistress Yester, it is not the first 
time I have come for succour to women of your house.  They say I must 
take to the shaws like Robin Hood, but the wildwood will be a palace 
if you are among its visitors.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Yester,&quot; Isobel muttered to herself.  &quot;The young leddy o' Calidon! 
Wha wad have thocht that the minister was acquaint there? Certes, she's 
the bonny ane,&quot; and she bobbed curtsies.
</para>
<para>
Katrine was the general.  &quot;These bundles are bedding and food. Up with 
them, sir, and I will guide Captain Kerr. I have also brought a covered
lantern, which will light us through the pines better than your candle, 
Mr David. La, this is a merry venture.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The sense of company, the presence of Katrine and the soldier, the nature 
of the errand, above all the preposterous figure of Isobel, whose terrors 
of the Wood were scarcely outweighed by her loyalty to her master and 
her curiosity about the girl, took from the occasion for David all 
sense of awe, and even endowed it with a spice of fun and holiday. 
The mood lasted till they had crossed the boundary glen and entered 
the pines; it endured even when, feeling their way along the foot 
of the low cliffs, they looked downward and saw by the lantern light 
an eery white stone in a dim glade. The girl guided them to a dry 
hollow where an arch of rock made a kind of roof and where a yard 
off a spring bubbled among the stones. It was she and not Isobel 
who made a couch of branches and fir boughs on which she laid the 
deerskins and plaids she had brought. It was she and not David who 
gathered dry sticks against the morning fire and saw that Kerr had 
flint and steel and tinder. It was she, too, who made a larder of 
a shelf in the rock, where she stored the food, and fixed certain 
hours of the day for further provisioning, and enjoined a variation 
of routes to prevent suspicion. It was she finally who presented 
Kerr with a pistol, shot, and powder-belonging, it is to be feared, 
to one of the imprisoned troopers -- and who saw him to bed like 
a nurse with a child.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'm as snug here as a winter badger,&quot; said Kerr contentedly. 
&quot;I lack nought but a pipe of tobacco, and that I must whistle 
for, seeing that I left my spleuchan at Philiphaugh. . . .  
Mistress, you've the knack of an old campaigner. You might have 
been at the wars.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The men of my race have always been at the wars and the women have 
always dreamed of them,&quot; she said, and on his forehead she kissed 
him good night.
</para>
<para>
		* * * * 
</para>
<para>
David Leslie came to Woodilee in the morning, but did not halt, pushing 
on to Lanark in the afternoon. His army was in less of a hurry, and 
three troop-captains made their beds in the manse, while the minister 
slept on his study floor.  They were civil enough, cadets of small 
houses in Fife, who had had their training to arms abroad, and cared 
as little for the cause they fought for as any mercenary of Tilly's. 
Within two days the neighbourhood was clear of soldiery, save for the 
garrisons left as earth-stoppers at houses like Calidon, which might 
be the refuge of malignants.
</para>
<para>
For a week Mark Kerr lay in the recesses of Melanudrigill, and for 
David the days passed like a seraphic vision.  Every night after the 
darkening he met Katrine in Paradise and the two carried to the refugee 
his daily provender-eggs and milk, ale from the Calidon buttery, 
cakes which were Mistress Grizel's, cheese which was Isobel's. For 
David the spell of the Wood had gone. He looked on it now as a man 
does at his familiar bedroom when he wakes from a nightmare, unable 
to reconstruct the scene of his terrors. His crusading fury, too, had
sensibly abated, for part of his wrath against witchcraft had been 
due to his own awe of the Wood and his disgust at such awe. Now the 
place was a shelter for a friend, and a meeting-ground with one he
loved, and the cloud which had weighed on him since he first saw it 
from the Hill. of Deer gave place to clear sky.  Men might frequent 
Melanudrigill for hideous purposes, but the place itself was innocent, 
and he wondered with shame how he came ever to think. that honest 
wood and water and stone could have intrinsic evil.
</para>
<para>
Nightly, in the light mists of the late September, when pine trees 
stood up out of vapour like mountains, and the smell of woodland ripeness 
was not yet tinged with decay, David and Katrine threaded the aisles 
and clambered among the long bracken, till a pinpoint of light showed 
from beside a rock and was presently revealed as Kerr's bivouac. They 
would sit late with him, listening to his tales and giving him the 
news of the glens, while owls hooted in the boughs and from the higher 
levels came the faint crying of curlews. There was much business to 
be done between Mark and Calidon -- business of Nicholas Hawkshaw's, 
who had been duly put to the horn, and over whose goods, by the intrigues 
of Mistress Grizel, a friendly curator had been appointed, and business 
of his own anent the tack of Crossbasket-and Katrine carried daily 
messages by letter and .by word of mouth. When his leg was healed 
there was a certain polish to be given to his appearance, and the 
ladies of Calidon were busy with their needles. When he left his lair 
at last it was just before dawn -- on foot, with a blue coat instead 
of the hodden grey of Isobel's goodman, and four miles on the Edinburgh 
road Jock Dodds from Calidon waited with a horse for him.
</para>
<para>
David would fain have had the leg prove troublesome that the time of 
hiding in the Wood might be prolonged, for that season passed for him 
with the speed of a too happy dream. To be with Katrine was at all 
times bliss, but to be her partner on these dark journeys and in these 
midnight conclaves was a rapture of happiness. If he had lost his awe 
of the Wood, he had lost also the sense that in letting his heart 
dwell on the girl he was falling away from duty. The standards of the 
Kirk meant the less to him since he was in declared controversy with 
its representatives, and a succourer by stealth of its enemies.  His 
canons of conduct were dissolving, and in their confusion he was 
willing to surrender -himself to more ancient instincts.  The minister 
was being forgotten in the man and the lover.
</para>
<para>
The lovers, though no word of love was spoken between the two. They 
were comrades only, truant children, boy and girl on a Saturday holiday.  
It was a close companionship, yet as unembarrassed as that of 
sister and brother. In her presence David caught her mood, and laughed 
with it, but when absent from her he was in a passion of worship. 
The slim green-gowned figure danced through his waking hours and 
haunted his dreams. He made no -plans, forecast no future; he was 
in that happy first stage of love which is content to live with a 
horizon bounded by the next meeting.
</para>
<para>
In such a frame of mind he may have grown careless, for he did not 
see what Isobel saw. His house-keeper, brisk with the consciousness 
of a partnership with her master in things unlawful and perilous, 
and under the glamour of Katrine's gentrice and beauty, was as unquiet 
as a hen with a brood of young ducks on the pond's edge  She clucked 
and fussed, and waited for David's return in an anxious tern-pest.  
&quot;There's queer ongaein's in this bit,&quot; she told him.  &quot;When I 
hearken in the sma' hours I hear feet trailin' as saft as a tod's,[*] 
and whiles a hoast [**] or a gant [***] which never cam frae a tod's 
mouth.  And yestreen when ye set out, sir, there was something slipped 
atween the birks and the wa' and followed.  I wish it mayna be your 
deid wraith.&quot; He pooh-poohed her fears, but on the last night, when 
he parted from Katrine in Paradise, and according to his custom 
watched her figure as, faint in the moonlight, it crossed a field 
of bracken above Rood, he saw something move parallel to her in the 
fern. On his way home, too, as he passed the kirkton road in the 
first light, there was a rustling among the elders and a divot 
fell mysteriously from the turf dyke.
</para>
<footnote>
* fox.  ** cough.  *** yawn.
</footnote>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XIV</chapnum>
<title>The Counterblast</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>HE</emph> dreamed that night that he was being spied upon, and next day -- 
with no more meetings with Katrine before him to fire his fancy -- 
his cold reason justified the fear. The conviction was presently 
confirmed by a discovery of Isobel's. Mark Kerr's cast clothes had 
been hidden at first in the gloom of the rafters in David's camceiled 
bedroom, but the coming of Leslie's troops compelled her to change 
this place of disposal to the stable, where in the space between the 
wall and the thatch she bestowed them, wrapped stoutly in sacking.  
She kept an eye on the bundle, and one morning it had disappeared. 
More, it had clearly been stolen and hurriedly opened, for the sacking 
and a tarry rope which bound it were found among the nettles beyond 
the kirkyard wall. Compromising goods indeed to come forth of a 
minister's house!
</para>
<para>
That same day Isobel returned from a visit to her cousin with a 
queer tale.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Something's gotten out, sir.  The wives in the kirkton are clatterin' 
like daws. 'What's this they tell me, gossip,' says one, 'about 
Babylonish garments found in the man se?' 'Faith, I kenna,' says I.  
'They're nane o' my findin', but wi' roarin' sodgers quartered in 
ilka chamber ye'll no surprise me if some unco gear were left behind.' 
'But it's nae honest gear o' Davy Leslie's lads,' she says, 'but the 
laced coats and plumit hats o' the malignants. And there's a report 
that ithers hae sleepit in the manse this past se'nnight than our am  
Covenant sodgers.' 'Wha tell't ye that, my wumman,' I says, 'was a 
black leear, and a thief forbye.  I'd like brawly to ken wha has been 
snowkin' round our doors and carryin' awa leem' tales and maybe some 
o' our plenishin'. Tell me the names, and man or wumman I'll hae my 
fingers at their lugs.' It was Jean of the Chasehopefit that spoke 
to me, and she got mair frae me than she expeckit. There wasna ane 
o' her auld misdaein's I didna fling in her teeth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The name of the woman disquieted David and he asked what she had answered.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Her!  She took my flytin' wi' downcast een, and that angered me 
sae that I had muckle ado to keep my hands frae her face. Syne she 
says, quietlike, 'Ye needna get in a steer, Isobel Veitch. If Mr 
Sempill's an honest man, he'll get his chance to redd up the <ital>fama. 
Fama,</ital> says she, whatever yon may mean -- there's a reek o' Chasehope 
about the word. And she went on wi' her saft een and her mim, mou' . 
-- ' There's waur nor that, Isobel wumshe says. 'Our minister, 
that's sae fierce against warlocks, has been walkin' a queer gait. 
There's them that hae seen him in the Wud, and wha do you think he 
met wi' there? It's no a name that I daur speak, but folk hae brunt 
for less than sic a randyvoo.' Ye may fancy, sir, what a stound I 
got, but I just spoke the kimmer civil and speired for mair. She 
wasna laith to tell. 'There's them,' says she, 'that saw the green 
gown o' the Queen of Elfhame, and the mune shinin' through her hair, 
and saw her gie a kiss to the minister.' Ye never kissed the 
leddy, sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;God forbid,&quot; cried David, startled as if at an impiety.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I thocht ye werena just as far forrit as that. . . Weel, that's the 
tale they've gotten, and may it stick in their thrapples!  I'm no 
feared for their blethers about fairies, but we'll need some stench 
lees to get the sodger's claes blawn over. I wish I kenned wha was 
the thief. I'll threip that they were left by Leslie's folk and 
that ye kenned nocht about them.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;For me,&quot; said David, &quot;I shall tell the plain truth, save in the 
mentioning of names. I command you, Isobel, to do likewise.  The man 
is by now out of danger, and a falsehood, which may be pardoned if 
it is to save another, is black sin if used by a coward to save himself.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Isobel looked at him uneasily. &quot;There will be an awfu' speak in 
the parish, sir.  Bethink ye, is it wise to gie sich a handle 
to them that wad bring ye doun? . . .  But I see your mind is 
made up and nae words o' mine will turn ye. We maun hope that the 
question will never be speired, and I daur ony man or wumman in 
the place to get sae far wi me as the speirin'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
During David's absence in Edinburgh Mr Fordyce, by the command of 
the Presbytery, had preached in the afternoon in the Woodilee kirk -- 
to but scanty audiences, for the news of Montrose's advance had 
inclined the people to keep inside their doors. On the first 
Sabbath after his return, when there were still troops in the 
place, the pulpit had been occupied by one of Leslie's chaplains, 
a stalwart member of the Church militant, who hailed from the Mearns 
and whose speech was consequently understood with difficulty in the 
Border parish. But on the next, when Mark Kerr had gone from his 
refuge in the Wood, David changed his mind, and himself filled the 
pulpit. At the news a great congregation assembled, for in that 
joyous day of delivery it was believed that the sins of the parish 
would be left on one side, and that the service, as in the other 
kirks in the land, would be one of thanksgiving and exultation.  
To the surprise of most of his hearers-and to the satisfaction of 
the suspicious -- there was no word of the recent crowning mercies, 
save a perfunctory mention in the opening prayer.
</para>
<para>
David, as befitted one who had just buried his father, discoursed 
on death.  He was in a mood which puzzled himself, for gentleness 
seemed to have come upon him and driven out his jealous wrath.  He 
had seen the righteous die, the man who had begot him, the last 
near kin he possessed, and memories of childhood and something of 
the wistfulness of the child had flooded in on his soul.
</para>
<para>
He had seen, too, the downfall of human pride, the descent of greatness 
to dust, and yet in that dust a more compelling greatness. Above all, 
his love for Katrine had mellowed and lit the world for him; it had 
revealed depths of joy and beauty which he had never known, but the 
beauty and joy were solemn things, and of a terrible fragility.  He 
felt anew the dependence of all things upon God and the need of 
walking humbly in His sight. So he preached not like an Old Testament 
prophet confident in his cause and eager to gather the spoil, but 
as one who saw from a high mountain the littleness of life against 
the vast background of eternity. He spoke of the futility of mortal 
hopes, the fallibility of man, the certainty of death. In a passion 
of tenderness he pled for charity and holiness as the only candles 
to light the short dark day of life-candles which, lit by a heavenly 
hand, would some day wax into the bright everlasting day of 
the New Jerusalem.
</para>
<para>
There were those among his hearers who were moved by his words, but 
to most they were meaningless and to many they were an offence.  
Peter Pennecuik was darkly critical.  &quot;The man is unsound as a peat,&quot; 
he declared. &quot;Whaur's the iron o' doctrine and the fire o' judgment 
in sic a baimly screed ? There's an ill sough there, sirs-he's ower 
fond o' warks and the rags o' our am  righteous-ness; Worthy Mr 
Proudfoot will be garrin' the stour fly the day denouncin' the Laodiceans 
that wad be lukewarm in cuttin' off the horns o' the wicked. Is there 
ony such goodly zeal in our man? Whaur's the denunciation o' the 
sins o' Montrose and his covenant-breakers?  It seems that he's 
mair convinced o' his am sins.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;He has maybe cause,&quot; Chasehope observed drily.
</para>
<para>
It had been David's intention to visit the manse of Kirk Aller and 
obtain the answer of the Presbytery's moderator to the charges he 
had formulated. This was a duty which could not be shirked, since 
he had put his hand to it, but at the moment the fire of battle had 
died in him and he ha4 no zest in the task. He found himself longing 
to take Isobel's view and believe that his senses had played him 
false, that the events of the Beltane and Lammas nights were no more 
than illusions.  So he had delayed journeying to Kirk Aller, hoping 
that his mood would change and that that which was now a cold duty 
would revive as a burning mission. . . . Suddenly a post brought 
him a summons from Mr. Muirhead to wait upon him without delay.
</para>
<para>
He rode down the riverside in a day of October glooms and shadows.  
Sometimes a wall of haze would drop from the hills so that the water 
ran wan as in the ballads, and the withering fern and blanching heath 
had the tints of December. Then a light wind would furl the shrouded 
sky into fantastic towers and battlements, through long corridors of 
which the blue heavens would shine like April at an infinite distance, 
and the bald mountain-tops, lit by sun-gleams, would be revealed. When 
he rode over the crook-backed bridge of Aller past the burgh gallows 
he saw that the doomster had been busy at his work. Three ragged 
scarecrows hung in chains, the flesh already gone from their limbs, 
and a covey of obscene birds rose at his approach.  Stragglers of 
Montrose, he guessed, and he wondered how many gallows-hills in 
Scotland showed the same grim harvest.  The thought, and the 
fantastic October
</para>
<para>
weather, deepened the gloom which all morning had been growing on him.
He found a new man in the minister's chair. The victory of his cause 
seemed to have expanded Mr Muirhead's person, so that he loomed across 
the oaken table like a judge in his robes.  Pride pursed his lips and 
authority sat on his forehead. Gone were the airs of tolerant good-humour, 
the assumption of meekness, the homeliness which had a greeting and 
a joke for all. This man sat in the seats of the mighty and shared 
in the burden of government, and his brow was heavy with the weight 
of it. He met David with a cold inquisitorial eye, and greeted him 
with a formal civility.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I sent for you, Mr Sempill,&quot; he said, &quot;anent the charge which you 
have set out in these papers and on which you have already conferred 
with me. There has been no meeting of Presbytery, owing to the disturbances 
in public affairs, but I have shown the papers to certain of my brethren 
and obtained their mind on them. I have likewise had the privilege of 
the counsel of the godly laird of Wariston, who, as you no doubt ken, 
is learned alike in the law of God and the law of man. I have therefore 
taken it upon myself to convey to you our decision, whilk you may take 
to be the decision of the courts of the Kirk, and that decision is 
that there is no substance in your case. You are upset on the relevancy, 
sir. There is nothing here,&quot; and he tapped the papers, &quot;which would 
warrant me in occupying the time of folk who have many greater 
matters in hand.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I did not ask for a judgment, but for an inquiry, and that I must 
continue to demand.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, but you must first show a prima facie case, and that you have failed 
to do. You have brought grievous charges against one noted servant of 
God, and sundry women, of whom it can at least be said that they bear 
a good repute. Your evidence-well, what is your evidence? You say that 
you yourself have seen this and heard that, but you are a tainted 
witness -- a matter to which I shall presently revert.
</para>
<para>
You have the man Andrew Shillinglaw in Reiverslaw, who, in the bit 
of precognition with which you have furnished me, tells a daft tale 
of dressing himself up like a mountebank, visiting the wood of 
Melanudrigill, and sharing in certain unlawful doings. I ask you, 
sir, what credence can be given to such evidence? <ital>Imprimis,</ital> he was 
himself engaged in wrong-doing, and so is justly suspect. I[em, he 
is a notorious wine-bibber, and when the mantis in, the wits are 
out. Whatna condition was he in to observe justly in the mirk of 
the night in the Black Wood, where by his own account he was capering 
like a puddock and was all the time in a grue of terror? He claims 
on that occasion to have laid a trap for the accused and to have 
informed two men of undoubted Christian conversation of his purpose, 
and he claims that on the next day the same witnesses at the toun 
of Chasehope were cognisant of the success of his trap.  As I live 
by bread and by the hope of salvation, this is the daftest tale 
that ever came to my ears. A smell of burning duds, and a missing hen! 
The veriest cateran that ever reived in the Hielands would be 
assoilzied on such a plea. There is not evidence here to hang a messan 
dog; Away with you, man, and let's hear no more of what I can only 
judge to have been a drunken cantrip.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I demand that Ephraim Caird be interrogated by the Presbytery and 
confronted with me and my witnesses.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You must first prove a prima facie case, as I say, for otherwise honest 
men might lose time and siller in being set to answer malicious libels. 
That is the law of Scotland, sir, and it is the law of every Christian 
land, and you have lamentably failed in that prior duty.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;There is my own evidence-the evidence of an eyewitness. You may 
account for Reiverslaw, but you have still to account for me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Just so.&quot; A grim humour seemed to lurk at the corner of Mr Muirhead's 
mouth. &quot;We have to account for you, Mr Sempill, and it seems that 
it will be a sore business.  For I have here &quot; -- he tapped a paper -- 
&quot; another dittay in which you yourself are named. It is painful for 
me even to give ear to accusations against a brother on whose head 
my own hands have been laid in holy ordination. But I have my solemn 
duty to perform and must consider the complaints of a kirk session 
against a minister as carefully and prayerfully as those of a minister 
against a kirk session.
</para>
<para>
The effect on David was of a sudden clearing of the air and a 
bracing of nerve. This was, then, to be no one-sided war, for 
his enemies had declared themselves, and met attack by counter-attack. 
He smiled at the portentous solemnity of Mr Muirhead's face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I can guess one of the names appendel to the charge,&quot; he said. 
&quot;It is that of Chasehope.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead turned over the paper. &quot;Ephraim Caird is there, and 
others no less weighty. There is Peter Pennecuik . . . and Alexander 
Sprot in Mirehope . . . and Thomas Spotswood in the mill of Woodilee. 
If godly elders are constrained to delate him who has been set over 
them in spiritual affairs, it's scarcely a thing to be met with 
a smirk and a grin.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am waiting to hear the charge.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is twofold. The complainants allege that you have had trokings with 
the Wood and the evil of the Wood-and indeed on your own confession 
we know that you have frequented it when decent folk were in their 
beds. There are witnesses to depone to following you to the edge of 
the thing, as you made your way stealthily at dead of night.  On 
what errand, Mr Sempill? And in what company?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is what I would like fine to know,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You were seen to meet a woman. They were simple folk who saw you and 
not free from superstition, so they jumped to the conclusion that the 
woman was no mortal but the Queen of the Fairies. That's as it may 
be. You and me are not bairns to believe in fays and bogles.  But the 
fact that emerges is that you were in the Wood at night, not once 
but many times, and that you were seen in a woman s company.  That 
is a fine report on a minister of God, and it will want some redding 
up, Mr Sempill.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;My movements were wholly innocent, and can be simply explained,&quot; 
said David. But the charge maddened him, he blushed deep, and he 
had much ado to keep his tongue from stammering.  He wrestled with 
a pagan desire to buffet Mr Muirhead violently in his large 
authoritative face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But can you explain this?&quot; the latter cried, for he was not 
unconscious of David's confusion. &quot;There is a second charge 
and its gravamen is the heavier, seeing that it alleges an offence 
both against the will of God and the governance of this land. On 
the 26th day of the month of September in this year of grace there 
was found in the appurtenances of the manse of Woodilee-to wit in 
the baulks of the stable atween the thatch and the wall-a bundle of 
garments, including a laced coat such as is worn by malignants, and 
sundry other habiliments strange to the countryside but well kenned 
in the array of caterans whereof Montrose was the late leader. It is 
argued therefore that shelter was given in the manse to a fugitive, 
and that a minister of the Kirk connived at the escape from justice 
of one of the Kirk's oppressors.  What say you to that, sir?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I say that it is true.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David was not prepared for the consternation in the other's face.  Mr 
Muirhead sat erect in his chair, his head was poked forward from 
between his shoulders like that of a tortoise from its shell, colour
 surged over cheeks and forehead and his bald crown, and his voice, 
when he found utterance, was of an unnatural smallness.  His careful 
speech broke down into country dialect.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye admit it! God peety you, ye do not blench to admit this awful sin! 
Have ye no shame, man, that ye sit there snug and canty and confess to 
a treason against Christ and His Kirk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was more in the man's face than anger and incredulous horror; 
there was pity, regret, a sense of ail unspeakable sacrilege done to 
all that he held most dear. David saw that the minister of Kirk Aller, 
though he might have little love for himself, would have given much 
had this confession been unsaid-that he felt that shame had 
been cast upon his calling and even upon his own self-respect. So 
he answered gently:
</para>
<para>
&quot;A wounded man came to my door. I fed him and nursed him, and he is 
now, I trust, in health and safety. I would do the same thing again 
for any distressed mortal.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead's eyes goggled.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have you no notion -- have you no glimmering of what you have done?  
I speak patiently, for I'm driven to think you're not right in the 
mind. You have loosed on the world a malefactor, a slayer and 
despoiler of God's people.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have his word that he will not again take up arms in Scotland. He 
was a soldier of the great Gustavus.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's the word of a malignant to lippen to? Man, you're easy 
begowked. When the Lord's cornmand anent our enemy is Smite and 
spare not, you, an ordained minister, connive at his escape. . . 
Ay, and there's more to it. I have news that you molested Leslie's 
troops in their pursuit of a light woman that followed Montrose''s 
camp, and that you took the name of the Lord in vain in interdicting 
them from their manifest duty. Have you not heard that at the brig 
of Linlithgow the wantons were drowned in scores by the command of 
the worthy General, whilk was a notable warning to sinners and an 
encouragement to God's people? Are there not Commissions of the 
Estates and of the Kirk appointed to judge the captured malefactors 
in Edinburgh and St Andrews, and gallows set on every burgh knowe 
be south of Forth? And you dare help to cheat the wuddy of one who 
was no doubt the blackest of them? There's no a presbytery in the 
land but has sent in a memorial to encourage those in authority in 
their righteous work. For shame, man! Even in your own parish you 
have Chasehope lending a hand and riding the hills like a moss-trooper -- 
the very man you would delate for sin.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I obey God's word and my own conscience.  I can imagine no blacker 
sin than cruelty to the defenceless.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;God's word!&quot; cried Mr Muirhead.  &quot;You've been lamentably ill-instructed. 
What did Joshua to the people of Jericho, but utterly destroy them, 
both man and woman, young and old? What did Gideon to the kings Zeba 
and Zalmunna? What was the command of the Lord to Saul when he went 
out against Agag king of the Amalekites but to slay both man and woman, 
infant and suckling, and when Saul would have saved Agag, what said 
Samuel to him ? -- ' Rebellion is as the sin of witchcraft and 
stubbornness is as iniquity and idolatry.' Your eyes are full of 
fatness if you canna see the Lord's will. And your conscience! You 
would set up your own fallible judgment against God's plain command 
and the resolved opinion of the haill Kirk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am a minister of Christ first and of the Kirk second. If the Kirk 
forgets its Master's teaching, we part company.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And what's that teaching, prithee?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;To have mercy and not sacrifice.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The minister of Kirk Aller closed his eyes as if in pain.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You're deep deep in the mire of your carnal conceits,&quot; he said. 
&quot;I thought you were only wayward and mistaken, but I see you're 
firm on the rock of your impenitence. Troth, Mr Ebenezer of Bold 
was in the right -- you've heresy in you as well as recalcitrance. 
This is Presbytery business, sir -- ay, and maybe matter for the 
General Assembly. I would be a faithless guardian of the sheepfold 
if I didna probe it to its bottom.  This complaint must go forward. -- 
Meantime,  till  the  Presbytery has adjudged it, I forbid you to 
conduct the ordinances in the kirk of Woodilee.  I will appoint some 
worthier person, lest the pure gospel milk on your lips be turned 
to poison.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I refuse to obey you, said David, &quot;for you -have no power to command. 
I stand on my rights to continue my ministrations till such time as 
the lawful authority sets me aside. Meantime I require that my charge 
against Chasehope go to the Presbytery equally with his charge 
against me.
</para>
<para>
Mr Muirhead was on his feet, with the famous glower on his face which 
had aforetime awed timid brethren. It did not awe David, who gave him 
back stare for stare with a resolution to which he was little accustomed. 
Indeed the vigorous youth of his antagonist and something in the set 
jaw made the elder man pause. He shuffled off as if to end the interview, 
and David strode from the house with unseeing eyes and a burning heart.
</para>
<para>
All the way home his head was filled with a confusion of angry thoughts. 
He saw himself caught in toils at once absurd and perilous.  He could 
imagine the prejudice which his sheltering of the fugitive would raise 
against him; he saw his indictment of Chasehope nullified by this 
legend of his own visits to the Wood; above all the bringing in of 
Katrine made him clench his hands with a sense of furious sacrilege.  
In that moment he seemed. to himself like a child without friends 
battering at a wall as broad as the earth and as high as the 
heavens. . . . But the consequent feeling was not of hopelessness but 
of a tight-lipped rage.  He longed to be in a world where blows could 
be struck swift and clean, and where hazards were tangible things 
like steel and powder.  Not for the first time in his life he wished 
that he had been a soldier. He was striving against folly and ignorance, 
blind prejudice, false conventions, narrow covenants. How much better 
to be fighting with armed men?
</para>
<para>
Isobel met him at the manse door with a portentous face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's a new man come to Crossbasket,&quot; she announced. &quot;His plenishin' 
cam up the water this mornin' four horse-loads -- and the drovers are 
bringin' his sheep and kye. I saw the body himsel' in the kirkton an 
hour syne. He's the rale down-the-water fairmer breed, verra weel set 
up and no that auld, and he wears a maud like a herd. But Mr David, 
sir -- she lowered her voice -- guess ye wha he is? I couldna be 
mistook, and when he cried me guid day I saw brawly that he kenned me 
and kenned that I kenned him.  He ca's himsel' Mark Riddel, but it's 
the glee'd sodger man that lay in our best bed.&quot;
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XV</chapnum>
<title>Hallowmass</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>ILL</emph> news travels fast, and by noon next day word of the complaint 
against their minister, of Mr Muirhead's suspension of him from the 
pulpit, and of David's defiance was in the mouth of every parishioner 
in Woodilee.  David was aware of curious eyes following him as he went 
about the place, and of a new constraint on the part of most of his 
Kirk Session.  Peter Pennecuik fled his approach and could be seen 
hobbling into the nearest kail-yard, while Mirehope, when he met him, 
gave him greeting with averted face. But he noted, too, a certain 
sympathy in others.  Women, who had formerly avoided him, had now a 
friendly word, especially the young ones, and Alison Geddie -- whose 
name had appeared in his charge -- was overheard, as he passed, to 
comment in her peahen voice to her gossip: &quot;Peety for sac wise -- 
like a lad, and him aye with the kind word and the open hand to 
puir folk.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Isobel, whose face was now always heavy with unspoken news, he kept 
at a distance, for in these days he was trying to make peace with his 
soul. By day and by night, on the hills and in his closet, he examined 
himself to find in his conscience cause of offence. He went over every 
step in his past course and could discover no other way than that he 
had followed. He could not see matter for blame in an act of common 
charity, though Old Testament precedents might be quoted against it; nor 
could he blame himself for his war against the things of the Wood. If he 
read his duty more by the dispensation of Christ than of Moses, it was 
Christ whom he had been ordained to preach. . . . 
Of Katrine he scarcely suffered himself to think. She was a thing too 
fine and gracious to be touched with such doleful cares. Yet it was the 
thought of her which kept youth alive in him, and in his; dreariest moments 
gave him a lift of the heart. When he looked down from the Hill of 
Deer on the dark shroud of Melanudrigill and beside it the shaws of birch 
and hazel which stretched towards Calidon, he saw his strife as a thing 
natural and predestined, and he himself as only a puppet in the grip of 
primordial powers. The thought gave him the confidence which springs 
from humility.
</para>
<para>
On the Sabbath he preached from a text in Ecclesiastes: &quot;So I returned, 
and considered all the oppressions that are done under the sun: and behold 
the tears of such as were oppressed, and they had no comforter; and on 
the side of their oppressors there was power; but they had no comforter.&quot; 
His hearers looked no doubt for some topical word, but they did not 
find it; few realised the meaning of a discourse which David preached 
rather to himself than to others. It was a confession of faith, a plea 
for personal religion, and an anathema against shibboleths and formulas 
which did not dwell in the heart. So long as religion is a pawn in a 
game of politics -- the argument ran -- so long will there be oppressors 
and oppressed, with truth the perquisite of neither side, and therefore 
comfort to none. . . 
</para>
<para>
The congregation was notably reduced, for the five elders and their 
families were absent.  But there was one new figure who sat modestly 
in the back parts of the kirk. It was that of a man of middle age, 
dressed like the other farmers in homespun, but holding himself with 
a spruceness rare in a place where men and women were soon bowed in 
the shoulders by unremitting toil.  His cheeks were shaven, so that he 
stood out from the others; since, besides the minister, only Chasehope 
was unbearded. His skin was as brown as a hazel-nut, and though the 
face was composed to a decent gravity, there was a vigour in the lines 
of it which spoke of a life not always grave. The man had a blue 
bonnet of a pattern common nearer the Border-smaller than the ordinary 
type which came from the Westlands -- and after the fashion qf Cheviot and 
Liddesdale he had a checked plaid of the kind called shepherds' tar-tan. 
But in the cast in the left eye, shown by a sudden lifting of the face, 
he revealed his identity.
</para>
<para>
The stranger did not wait to speak to the minister, but David found Amos 
Ritchie at the kirkyard gate, and asked concerning him.  &quot;It's the new 
man that has ta'en the tack o' Crossbasket,&quot; was the answer. &quot;He's frae 
the far Borders-Jeddart way, they tell me-and it's no easy to understand 
the wild hill tongue o' him. But he's a decent, weelspoken body, and it 
seems he's a skilly fairmer and a graund judge o' sheep. He has stockit 
his mailin' weel, and has a full hirsel on Windyways. . . Na, he's a 
single man and hauds to himsel', though he has a name for a guid neebor.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Amos accompanied the minister to the manse, and there was a shy friendliness 
in his air, as if he regretted the estrangement of the summer. He spoke 
only of weather and crops, but his manner suggested a desire to say 
something by way of encouragement. Only at the manse gate, however, 
did he find utterance.  &quot;If there's deep waters to be crossed, sir, 
I'll ride the ford wi' ye,&quot; he muttered as he turned away.
</para>
<para>
Presently it was apparent that a change had come over the parish.  
David's doings in the summer had puzzled and alarmed it; even 
those with a clear conscience had thought of him as a danger to 
their peace and good repute  But now that he was himself in dire 
trouble and indicted before the Presbytery, there was a revulsion 
in his favour; his friendliness was remembered, his kindness 
in the winter storms, his good looks and his youth. He had his own 
party in the place, a party composed of strange elements.  There 
were in it noted professors like Richie Smail and Rab Prentice; Isobel 
and her kin were hot on his side; Reiverslaw, of course, many of the 
frequenters of Lucky Weir's ale-house, and all who from poverty or 
misdeeds were a little blown upon.  If the Pharisees and Scribes were 
against him, he had the publicans and sinners. Also he had the children. 
By some secret channel the word had gone round in the circles of 
childhood that their friend was in trouble, and in queer ways they 
showed their affection.  The girls would bring him posies; bowls of 
wild rasps and blaeberries would be left at the manse; and often on 
the doorstep Isobel found an offering of guddled trout neatly strung 
on rushes. Daft Gibbie, too, had become a partisan.  He would dog 
David's footsteps, and when spoken to would only reply with friendly 
pawings and incoherent gabble.  He would swing his stick as if it 
were a flail.  &quot; Sned them, sir,&quot; he would cry, 'f sned them like 
thristles.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But the comfort of the atmosphere in which he now moved was marred for 
David by the conduct of Reiverslaw.  That worthy had been absent in 
Nithsdaie when Philiphaugh was fought and did not return till the week 
after the battle. It would seem that the general loss of stock due to 
the disturbances had benefited his pocket; he has sold his hog-lambs 
to advantage and had had a prosperous deal in black cattle with Leslie's 
quartermaster. By the middle of October the work on the hill farms 
was all but over for the year, and Reiverslaw was a leisured man.  
Whether the cause was the new access of wealth or the excitements 
of Lammas, he fell into evil courses. There was word of brawls in 
ale-houses as far apart as Lanark and Kirk Aller, and he would lie 
for days in Lucky Weir's, sleeping off potations, only to renew them 
in the morning. His language coarsened, his tongue grew more unbridled, 
his aptitude for quarrels increased tilt he became a nuisance in the 
village and a public scandal. &quot;A bonny friend ye've gotten in Andra 
Shilling-law,&quot; Isobel said bitterly.  &quot;For three days he has been as 
fou as the Baltic and cursin' like a cornet o' horse.&quot; David made 
several attempts to reason with him, penetrating to the back parts of 
the ale-house, but got no reply but tipsy laughter and owlish admonitions. 
It looked ill for the credit of his principal witness.
</para>
<para>
The call of Calidon was always in his ears, but he did not yield to 
it. October brought a fortnight of drenching rains, and Katrine came 
no more to Paradise. He could not bring himself to seek her in her 
home, for he dared not compromise her. Already a nameless woman appeared 
in the tales against him, and he would have died sooner than let the 
woman's identity be revealed.  From her he had had kindness and comradeship, 
but these things were not love, and how could he ask for love when every 
man's hand was against him and he could offer nothing but company in 
disrepute? . . . . But loneliness weighed on him, and he longed to talk 
with two especially -- the minister of Cauldshaw and the new tenant 
of Crossbasket. But when he rode one afternoon to Cauldshaw, it was 
not only the minister's self that drew him there, but the remembrance 
that the Calidon household were among his parishioners.
</para>
<para>
Mr Fordyce was scarcely recovered of an autumn ague, and his little 
book-room was as bleak and damp as a grave. He sat in a wooden armchair 
propped up with pillows, nightcap on head, a coarse drugget dressing-gown 
round his shoulders, and two pairs of stockings on his thin shanks. 
His wife was sick a-bed, outside the rain dripped steadily, there 
was no fireplace in the chamber, and gloom muffled it like a shroud. 
Yet Mr James was casting a horoscope, and mild and patient as ever.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Tell me the whole story, Mr David, for I've heard naught but rumour. 
They say you've fallen out sorely with Mr Mungo at Kirk Aller.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David recounted the events of the past months, beginning with Lammastide 
in the Wood and ending with his last visit to Mr Muirhead. The other 
heard him out with many sighs and exclamations, and mused for a little 
when he had finished.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You havena been over-gentle with the Moderator,&quot; he said.  &quot;Far be it 
from me, that am so imperfect, to impute error to a brother, but you 
canna deny that you took a high line with Mr Mungo.  
</para>
<para>
&quot;I was within my rights in refusing to obey his suspension.  He had no 
resolution of the Presbytery behind him.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Maybe no.  But was there no excess of vehemence, Mr David, in defying 
one who is your elder?  Would not the soft word have availed better?  
You seem to have spoken to him like a dominie to a school bairn.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, I do not deny that I was in a temper, but if I was angry it was 
surely with a righteous anger. Would you have me let that black 
business of the Wood be mothered just because Chasehope with his 
sleek face and his cunning tongue has imposed on the Presbytery? And for 
the charge against myself, would you, I ask you, have refused succour 
to any poor soul that came seeking it, though his sins were scarlet 
on him?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'll not say. I'm a timid man by nature, and I'm so deeply concerned 
with my own state towards God that I'm apt to give other duties the 
go-by-the more shame to me! In the matter of the Wood, -- I think you 
have done honestly and bravely, and I doubt I wouldna have had the 
courage to do like-wise myself. The Lord be thankit that such a perplexity 
never came my way! . . . As for Mont-rose's man, what am I to say? Mr 
Mungo will quote Scripture against you, and it's not for me to deny the 
plenary inspiration of the whole Word, though I whiles think the Kirk 
in Scotland founds a wee thing over much on the Old Testament and 
forgets the New. But I can see great trouble for you there, Mr David, 
for the view of Kirk Aller will be the view of the Presbytery -- 
and the view of the General Assembly, if the thing ever wins that far.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But what would you yourself have done in like case? Would you have 
turned the suppliant from your doors?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I do not know. To be honest with you, I do not know. I am a weak vessel 
and very fearful. But in such a case I should pray-ay, I-should pray to 
be given strength -- to do as you did, Mr David.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The young man smiled. &quot;I've got the comfort I wanted. I'm content to be 
judged by you, for you are nearer the Throne than the whole Presbytery 
of Aller and the Merse.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no. Dinna say that. I'm the feeblest and poorest of God's servants, 
and at the moment I'm weakening on what I said and doubting whether a 
man should not bow to lawful authority and cultivate a humble spirit 
as the first of the Christian graces.  What for did our Lord found 
the Kirk if it wasna to be obeyed?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Bide where you were, Mr! James. What kind of a Presbyterian would you 
make yourself out? By your way we should be still under the bondage of 
Rome, because Rome was once the lawful authority. A bonny Covenanter, 
you! If the Kirk constrains conscience unduly and makes a tyranny out 
of Christian freedom, then the Kirk is no more to be respected than 
the mass the old priests mumbled in Woodilee.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mr Fordyce smiled wanly. &quot;I daresay you're in the right. But what a tangle 
for an honest man! You've taken the high road, Mr David, and I must keep 
jogging along the low road, for there's but the two of them. A man must 
either jouk and let the jaw go bye, as the owercome says, or he must 
ride the whirlwind.  I have been given the lown downsetting, where I can 
nourish my own soul and preach Christ to the best of my power, and let 
the great matters of Kirk and State pass me, asaman hears the blast 
when he sits by his fireside. It is for stronger spirits like you to 
set your face to the storm.  Alack and alas, I'm no fierce Elijah to 
break down the temples of Baal, and I'm no John Knox to purge the 
commonwealth of Israel. If you go forward in God's name, my dear young 
man, you'll have a hard road to travel, but you'll have the everlasting 
arms to support you. . . . But, oh, sir, see that you fight in the 
Lord's strength, and not in your own.  Cultivate a meek and contrite
spirit, for I suspect that there is a good leaven of the old Adam 
in your heart.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That's a true word. There's an unregenerate heat of temper in me at 
which I often tremble.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And you must keep your walk and conversation most pure and circumspect. 
Let there be no cause of reproach against you save what comes from 
following your duty.&quot; Mr Fordyce hesitated a little. &quot;There was word 
of another count in Mr Mungo's complaint anent you. . . . Wasna there 
some tale of a woman?&quot;
</para>
<para>
David laughed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Queen of the Fairies, Mr Muirhead says, though he does not believe 
in her. . . .  I have a confession to make to you, Mr James, which I 
would make to no other ear. I have met with a lady in the Wood, for 
indeed she was engaged with me in the same errand of mercy. I had met 
with her before that, and I count the days till I may meet with her 
again. It is one whom you know -- Katrine Yester.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mistress Katrine!&quot;  Mr Fordyce cried 'out. &quot;The young lassie from 
Calidon. Mr David, Mr ~avid, is this not a queer business for a 
minister of the Kirk? Forbye that she is of a house that is none too 
friendly to our calling -- though far be it for me to deny her 
Christian graces -- forbye that, I say, she is of the high gentrice. 
What kind of wife would she be for a poor Gospel preacher?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, man, there's no question of wife.  You make me blush to hear you. 
The lady would never think of me any more than an eagle would mate 
with a throstle. But a minister is a man like the lave,[*] and this 
one is most deeply in love, though he has not the thousandth part of a 
hope. There's no shame in an honest love, which was a blessing given 
to man by God's own self in Eden.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* rest.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;It's a matter I ken little of,&quot; said Mr Fordyce shyly.  &quot;Me and Annie 
have been that long wedded that we've forgot what our wooing was like. 
She wasna by-ordinar in looks, I mind, but she had a bonny voice, and 
she had mense and sense and a fine hand for making apple jeely. . . .  
Mistress Katrine! You fly high, David, but I wouldna say -- I wouldna say . . . 
Anyway you've a well-wisher in me. . . .  But Katrine Yester!&quot;
</para>
<para>
David left the minister of Cauldshaw ingeminating that name, and 
in a blink of fine weather set out on his way home. He was on foot 
and beyond Reiverslaw, where the road first runs out of the birks 
to the Hill of Deer, when he was overtaken by a horseman. The mount 
was no farmer's shelty or minister's garron, but a mettled chestnut 
mare, with marks of breeding in head and paces, and he who rode her 
was the new tacksman of Crossbasket.
</para>
<para>
In that open bright place there could be no eaves-dropper. The rider 
dismounted and flung his arms round the minister.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I pay my debt,&quot; he cried, &quot;by becoming your dutiful parishioner, your 
next-door neighbour, and your faithful hearer ilka Sabbath. . . .  
Danger, you say. Man, the darkest hidy-hole is just under the light, 
and the best sanctuary for a hunted man is where he is not expected. 
They're riping the ports for Mark Kerr, once captain of Mackay's and 
till late a brigadier under the King's Captain-general, but they'll no 
trouble about honest Mark Riddel, a plain farmer-body from Teviotside, 
that comes up Aller seeking a better tack and has mair knowledge of sheep 
than any herd on the hills. And Mark will pay his way with good white 
siller and will be a kind neighbour at kirk and market. My Roxburghe 
kin are buried deep, but there's folk in Woodilee already that mind of 
my great-aunt that was married into Annandale, and my cousin once 
removed that was a herd in Megget. Trust an old soldier for making a 
fine palisado around him of credible lees. I run no risk save the new 
ones that I make for myself, and I'm in no mind for that, for a peaceful 
year or two will be good for my soul, till I see whatna way the cat 
jumps. Montrose must get him abroad, and if I'm to bide quiet let it 
be in my own countryside and not in a stinking foreign city. . . . 
But for yourself, Mr David? From all I hear you've been making an 
ill bed to lie on.&quot;
</para>
<para>
They sat down in the roadside heather and David brought up to date 
the tale which he had first told him in the deeps of the Wood. To 
unburden himself to this man was a greater comfort than his talk at 
Cauldshaw, for this was one accustomed to desperate straits and 
chances and of a spirit more akin to his own. The soldier whistled 
and looked grave.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Faith, you've stirred up the hornets, and it's not easy to see where 
you will get the sulphur to smoor them. There's much in common between 
you and my Lord Marquis. You see the ills of the land and make haste 
to redd them, but you have no great notion of what is possible.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You would not have had me do otherwise?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No, no. I like your spirit fine, and beyond doubt you've taken the 
honest road  But we live in a pitiful world, where honesty is an 
ill-requited trade; -- and you've let Yourself be forced into 
defence, whilk is an unpleasant position for a campaigner. . .
Count me on your side, but let me take my own gait. It winna do for you 
and me to appear to be chief [*] in public. I'll make haste to conciliate 
the mammon of unrighteousness-whilk I take to be Chasehope -- so dinna 
wonder if you hear that the two of us are like brothers. But it's the 
Kirk I fear, your own sacred calling, Mr David. One shilpit body in 
bands and a Geneva gown, the way things are guided now, is more powerful 
than a troop of horse and less easy to get upsides with. . .   Still 
and on, I'm at hand across the glebe, and we'll no be beat for lack 
of good contriving. The night's the time, when we can step across and 
collogue at our ease.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* friendly.
</footnote>
<para>
To have the soldier at Crossbasket gave a lift to David's spirit. But 
at first he saw him rarely, for it was wise to let the man settle down 
in the place before appearing in his company, lest people should suspect 
a previous friendship.  Mark Riddel appeared to be for ever on the 
move, and the minister met him oftenest on the Rood road -- generally 
in the early darkness. It pleased him to think that his neighbour was 
visiting Calidon, for it seemed to bring Katrine nearer. But he made 
no effort to see the girl himself. With the fall of the leaf the season 
for Paradise had gone, and he could not seek her at home till he had 
unravelled the tangle of his own perplexities.
</para>
<para>
The chief of them was the approach of Hallowmass. He was determined 
not for one moment to forgo his charge against Chasehope and his 
Coven, whatever the counter-charge against himself might be, and if 
necessary to go in person again to the Wood. But his chief ally 
Reiverslaw spent his days drinking soddenly in the clachan, and 
when he sought him out at the ale-house he got nothing but fuddled 
laughter. Then one morning he found him on the hill, and apparently 
in a better mind.
</para>
<para>
&quot;My ran-dan is bye,&quot; said Reiverslaw sullenly. &quot;Ye've cause to upbraid 
me, sir, and no words o' yours can be waur than what I gie mysel'. 
It's apt to take me that way at this time o' year, and I think black 
burnin' shame that I should be sae thirled to the fauts o' the 
flesh-drinking like a swine in a stye among folk that, when sober, 
I wadna touch wi' a grape's end.  I'm no better than the beasts that 
perish.  But I've found out ae thing in these humblin' days.  There'll 
be nae Wud at Hallowmass. The folk we ken o' dinna fancy the wud 
aince the Lammas is bye, and it's the clachan itsel' that will 
see their next cantrips.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* sickens.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;But there is no place that could contain them   &quot;David began.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I ken, but they maybe follow some ither gait. I'll be in the kirkton 
that nicht-na, na, ye needna fear for me, I'll no gang near the 
hostler-wife -- the verra thocht o' yill and usquebagh staws [*] me. 
But I'll be there, and you maun be in the manse, and we'll guide our 
gait according to what the nicht brings forth. I'll wager Chasehope 
will no be long out o' my sicht, and if he meddles wi' me he'll find 
me waur than the Deil's oxter. . . . Keep a watch on yoursel' that day, 
sir, for there's mony will wish ye out o' the clachan.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The last day of October came and David rose to find that the rain 
had gone, and that over the drenched hills had dawned a morning as 
bright as April. He spent the forenoon in distracted study, striving 
to keep his mind on printed pages, but his restlessness was such that 
after dinner it sent him to the moors. He took his old road for 
the Rood tops, and by three o'clock had reached the pass from Clyde, 
where in July he had had his talk with Reiverslaw.
</para>
<para>
The earth was soaked with the October rains, and as the sun's power 
declined in the afternoon a mist began to creep out of the glens. 
Insensibly the horizon shortened, the bold summit of Herstane Craig 
became a blur and then was hidden in clouds, the light wind of the 
morning died away, and over the land crept a blind eery stillness. 
David turned for home, and long before he had reached the crest 
above Reiverslaw the fog was down on him. It was still a gossamer 
covering through which it was possible to see a hundred yards ahead, 
but objects stood up in it in unfamiliar outlines-a sheepfold like 
a city wall, a scrag of rowan like a forest tree.
</para>
<para>
A monstrous figure appeared in the dimness which presently revealed 
itself as a man on horseback. David saw that it was Mark on his chestnut.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Well met,&quot; the man cried. &quot;I'm pushing for home, for I'm getting the 
yowes to the infield, but I saw you before the mist dropped and I guessed 
I would find you here. There's a friend of yours up bye that would be 
blithe to see you -- up the rig from the auld aik on the road to the 
Greenshiel.&quot; With no further word Mark touched his mare and went off 
at a canter.
</para>
<para>
The friend, thought David, would be Richie Smail, who might have some 
message to him from Reiverslaw. So he turned as directed past the root 
of oak towards the ridge of the hill.  In twenty yards a figure loomed 
before him, a figure on a horse. He fancied it was Mark returning, 
till as he drew nearer he saw that it was no man that sat the black 
gelding and peered into the thick weather.
</para>
<para>
It flashed through his mind that Mark had sent him here on purpose. And 
then something came into his soul which he had never known before, a 
reckless boldness, a wild joy which caught at his heart. The girl was 
looking away from him and did not turn her head till he was close on her 
and had spoken.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Mistress Katrine,&quot; he cried breathlessly.
</para>
<para>
She looked down on him, her face rosy, her hair bedabbled with the mist 
jewels. She did not start at his approach.  Was it possible that she 
was expecting him?
</para>
<para>
&quot;What does the minister on the hill?&quot; she asked. &quot;What does Mistress 
Katrine? It will be a thick night and you are still far from Calidon.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She was dressed all in green, with a kirtle which scarcely reached 
her ankles and left her foot in the stirrup clear. The feather from 
her green hat hung low over her curls. David had never seen a woman 
gloved and booted for the hunt, and in that hour and in that wild 
place the apparition was as strange and as beautiful as a dream.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I took out the hawks this morning with Edie the falconer, for the 
mallards were flighting over from Clyde. Edie went back an hour ago 
with the birds, and I lingered to watch the mist creep up. Maybe I 
have lingered too long.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That was good fortune for me,&quot; he said. &quot;t have not dared to come 
seeking you, but now that we are met I will convoy you to Calidon. 
Presently the world will be like the inside of a feather bed.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She made no protest, when he laid his hand on her bridle to turn 
her horse, and as he stole a look at her he saw that she was smiling. 
That smile sent a tremor through him so that he forgot every care and 
duty. He and she were enclosed in a magical world-together and alone 
as they had never been before. . . . He felt that he could bring her 
safely through raging rivers and across mountains of stone, that for 
her he could scale the air and plough the hills, that nothing was 
impossible which she commanded. They two could 'make of the world a 
song and a rapture. So deep was his transport that he scarcely heard 
her voice when she spoke.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have been hearing of your troubles, Mr David. He whom we must call 
Mark Riddel has told me.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I have no troubles,&quot; he cried.  &quot;Now that I see you the world is 
altogether good.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Will you tell that to the Presbytery? &quot; she asked, laughing.
</para>
<para>
I will tell it to the broad earth-if you give me leave.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A momentary confusion came over her.  She slightly checked her horse, 
and as the ground shelved the beast stumbled. The slip brought her 
in contact with David's shoulder, and before she knew his hand was 
laid on hers.
</para>
<para>
Oh, my dear, my dear,&quot; he cried.  &quot;Katrine, I must say it . . . I am 
daft for love of you. . . Since I first saw you down in the greenwood 
your two eyes have been sun and moon to me. Your face -- God forgive me -- 
comes between me and the Word. There are times when I cannot pray for 
thinking of you. . . . It's nothing I ask of you, Katrine, but just 
leave to tell you. What was it your song said ? -- ' There's none for 
me but you, my love '-- and oh! it's the gospel truth.&quot;
</para>
<para>
She did not reply, but her hand did not move under his. They were 
descending the hill towards Rood, and the fog had grown so thick that 
each to the other was only a shadow.  Before it had enclosed them in 
a visible encirclement; now it seemed to have crept so near that it 
dislimned the outlines of horse and rider. He held her by touch and 
by sight, and this disembodiment seemed to give him courage.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I seek nothing,&quot; he said, &quot;but that You should know my love. I am 
perplexed with coming battles, but so long as you're in life there's 
nothing can daunt me. I would not have you smirched with the stour of 
them, but if you'll let me think of you and mind of you and whiles see 
you I'll be as strong as Samson. The papist cries on his saints, and 
you are the saint whose name is written on my heart.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Still she did not speak, and he cried out in alarm.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Have I angered you? Forgive me -- forgive me -- but I had to speak. Not 
one other word more will I say till we are at Calidon door.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Her answer, when it came, was strange, for it was a song crooned 
very softly:
</para>
<para>
It's love for love that I have got,
And love for love again.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A great awe came over David and checked his breath-the awe of one 
who sees and yet does not believe, the answer to a hopeless prayer. 
His hand tightened on hers, but she slipped it away.  &quot;So turn,&quot; 
she sang:
</para>
<song><verse><line>
&quot;So turn your high horse heid about</line><line>
And we will ride for hame, my love,</line><line>
And we will ride for hame.&quot;
</line></verse></song>
<para>
The hand which had moved from under his was laid on his head.  Suddenly 
a face bent down towards him and a kiss as light as a bird's wing 
brushed his forehead. He caught her to him from the saddle.
</para>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XVI</chapnum>
<title>The Witch Hunt</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>DAVID</emph> awoke next morning to a world which had been suddenly 
re-created. That Katrine should return his love upheaved for him 
the foundations of the globe.  Nothing could be the same again, in 
face of this tremendous fact; his troubles lifted like mist in the 
sun, for what ill could befall one whom Katrine loved? Even the 
incubus of sin in Woodilee seemed to lighten, for evil could not 
prevail with such a lady walking the earth. He felt that he had come 
anew into the land of the living, and every fibre of him sang praises.
</para>
<para>
His new fortitude was proof against even the news which Reiverslaw brought.  
That worthy arrived at the manse with a long face. The Coven in Woodilee 
had held their Hallowmass rites and to the best of his belief they had 
held them in the kirk. . . .  He had lost sight of Chasehope early in 
the evening, and had gone to Mirehope on a false scent. . . . They had 
been watching the manse and knew that the minister was from home.  . . 
He had hastened up the road seeking David and had been overtaken by the 
fog, and when he got back to Woodilee the place had been under a blanket.
</para>
<para>
Doubtless the Devil was protecting his own.
</para>
<para>
There had been no cruisies lit in the cottages, even of those who were 
known to be of the Coven. But, as luck would have it, he had entered the 
kirkyard and had seen a speck of light in the kirk. The door was locked, 
but he was clear that there were folk inside. . . . He had roused Robb 
to get the key, but no key was to be found. He had gone for Amos Ritchie 
to break open the door, and though Amos had refused to stir, he had 
borrowed a mell and a crowbar; but when he reached the kirk, the place 
was quiet and dark again, and the keys were lying on Robb's doorstep.
</para>
<para>
The man was really shocked, for this was a superfluity of naughtiness 
for which he had not been prepared. To David, with a memory of his Kirk 
Session, the sacrilege was less of a surprise; if men and women could 
defy their Maker by sitting at the communion table and by taking in 
vain the Gospel words, they would not shrink from polluting God's house. 
But it proved the boldness and security of the evil-doers.  It was 
Chasehope of whom he chiefly thought, Chasehope, that darling of the 
Presbytery, the ally of the Kirk in hunting down malignants, the one 
in all the parish who flaunted most his piety. The man grew in stature
as he contemplated him. Here was no feeble sinner but a very provost 
in his craft, who turned all the' uses of religion to his foul purposes. 
And at the thought David, fired by his new happiness, almost rejoiced; 
he was fighting not with human frailty, but against a resolute 
will to damnation.
</para>
<para>
That day he received a summons to attend on the following Monday upon 
a special meeting of Presbytery at Kirk Aller for a preliminary 
examination. The thing seemed to him now to have lost all terrors. 
He had no anger against his accusers, for were they not dull old men 
who knew nothing of the ravishing world that had been opened to him? 
He would be very meek with them, for he pitied them; if they chose 
to censure and degrade him he would bear it patiently. His extreme 
happiness made him feel more than ever in the hands of the Almighty 
and disposed to walk softly before Him. He had given many hostages 
to fortune, but he had won something which could never be taken away. 
Thankful and humble he felt, in love with life and with all humanity, 
and notably less bellicose. His path of duty was clear, but he would 
not court antagonisms. He owed much to the less fortunate, he who daily 
met Katrine in the greenwood or on the hill in the soft noons which 
make a false summer at autumn's end.
</para>
<para>
So on the Sabbath he preached a sermon which was long spoken of in 
Woodilee. He discoursed of charity-a topic not popular in the Kirk, 
and commonly left to such as Mr Fordyce who were afflicted with 
ill-health. For a young minister, his face ruddy with the hill winds 
and his figure as well set up as a dragoon's, to expand on such a matter 
seemed a mere waste of precious time, when so many more marrowy subjects 
lay to his hand. Yet there was that in David's earnestness which 
impressed his audience almost as much as if his sermon had been on 
death and judgment. He had a new hearer. A man sat beneath the pulpit 
whose eyes never moved from the minister's face-a mere lath of a man, 
thin to emaciation, with a narrow head and a much-freckled face, a 
ragged beard, and eyes with red lights in them like a ferret's. 
David noticed that as the kirk emptied the others seemed to shun the 
new-comer's proximity. As he moved to the door, there was a drift 
away from him, like sheep from a collie.
</para>
<para>
That night Isobel gave him news of the stranger.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The pricker has come,&quot; she announced in a solemn voice. &quot;He arrived 
yestreen and is bidin' wi' Chasehope. Yon was him in the kirk the day, 
yon body wi' the fernietickles [*] and the bleary een. They ca' him 
Kincaid -- John Kincaid, and he's frae Newbottle way -- anither than a 
guid ane, if a' tales he true. Eh, sir, this is a shamefu' business, 
routin' out puir auld bodies and garrin' them gie daft answers, and 
syne delatin' them on what they ca' their confessions. There's naebody 
safe that hasna a power o' keepin' a calm sough and giem' back word 
for word. I wadna be feared mysel' o' ony Kincaid, but if you was to 
cross-speir me, Mr David, wi' your searchin' een, I daresay ye could 
get me to own up to ony daftness ye liked to pit to me. I dinna haud 
wi' this prickin' o' witches, and I can find nae warrant for it in the 
Word. Belike it's some device that thae weary Embro lawyers hae howkit 
out o' their rotten herts.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* freckles.
</footnote>
<para>
As he rode to Kirk Aller next day David reflected much on Isobel's 
tale.  Who could have brought a pricker to Woodilee-and lodged him 
with Chasehope? Was it the work of the Presbytery? Was it a plan to 
cover up the major sin by hunting out minor sinners? He knew of the 
pricker class as of the worst repute, knaves and quacks who stirred 
up popular superstition and were responsible often for hideous 
brutalities. Even the Law looked askance at them. He did not like to 
be absent from his parish when such a creature was let loose in it.
</para>
<para>
The examination of the Presbytery lasted for two days.  He had gone 
lightly to face it, but he found it a formidable affair. Business began 
with long prayers and prelections delivered to his address. The 
Moderator constituted the court with the formality of a Lord of Session 
and the solemnity of a minister fencing the tables at the Communion 
season. He announced that the matter for examination would be limited 
to the charge of assisting the Kirk's enemies.  The prior charge of 
witchcraft preferred by the minister of Woodilee against certain parishioners 
would be relegated to a later day, since the Privy Council on his motion 
had issued a Commission to inquire into the machinations of the Devil 
in that parish, naming as its members himself, the minister of Bold, 
and the Laird of Killiequhair. This, thought David, explains the 
pricker. Mr Muirhead added that he had moved in the matter at the 
request of a godly elder, known to all of them, Ephraim Caird in 
Chasehope.
</para>
<para>
The court was composed of the two score of ministers in the Presbytery, 
and only Mr Fordyce was lacking, for he was once more stretched upon 
a bed of sickness. As it was only a preliminary examination there 
were no witnesses, since the object was to give the accused a chance 
of stating his case and so narrow the issue to be ultimately tried. 
The Moderator read aloud sworn statements, to which no names were 
appended, the names, as he explained, being reserved for the time when 
the complainants should appear in person. To David it was obvious 
that, though one of the statements was by a soldier of Leslie's, 
the others must come from members of his own flock. There was nothing 
new in the details -- the finding of the cavalier's clothes in the 
manse outhouse, the interference with the troopers at the Greenshiel, 
and certain words spoken on that occasion; but what surprised him was 
the fact that the avowal which he had made to Mr Muirhead was not set 
down.  It was clear from the Moderator's manner that he proposed to 
forget that episode, and was willing that David should deny any and 
every charge in the libel. Indeed he seemed to encourage such a course. 
&quot;The Court will be glad,&quot; he said, &quot;if our young brother can blow away 
these most momentous charges. Everybody kens that among wars and rumours 
of war daft tales spring up, and that things are done in the confusion 
without ill intent, whilk are not defensible. It is the desire of 
all his brethren that Mr Sempill shall go forth assoilzied of these 
charges, which are maybe to be explained by the carelessness of a 
domestic and the thoughtless words of a young man carried for a 
moment out of himself, and no doubt incorrectly reported.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But David did not take the hint. He avowed frankly that he had entertained 
a fugitive of Mont-rose at the manse, and had assisted him to escape. 
Asked for the name, he refused to give it. He also confessed that he 
had endeavoured too late to protect an Irishwoman at the Greenshiel 
and had spoken with candour his opinion of her persecutors.
</para>
<para>
&quot;It is alleged,&quot; said a heavy man, the minister of Westerton, &quot;that 
you promised these poor soldiers eternal torments, and them but doing 
their Christian duty, and that you mocked at them as inferior in 
valour to the reprobate Montrose.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;No doubt a false report, Mr Archibald,&quot; said the Moderator. &quot;It's like 
that the worthy sodgers had been looking at the wine when it was red 
and werena that clear in their understanding.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I cannot charge my memory with what I said,&quot; David replied, &quot;but it 
may well have been as set forth. That, at any rate, was what I had 
it in my mind to say.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A sigh of reprobation rose from the Court, and the Moderator shook 
his head. He honestly desired to give David a way of escape, not from 
any love he bore him, but for the credit of the Kirk. This, too, was 
the general feeling. As David looked over the ranks of his judges he 
saw stupidity, arrogance, confusion, writ on many faces, but on none 
malevolence. This Court would deal mildly with him, if he gave them 
the chance, for the sake of the repute of their common calling.
</para>
<para>
He laboured to be meek, but no answers, however soft, could disguise 
the fact that he and they looked upon things from standpoints 
eternally conflicting. It was suggested to him again and again that 
the stranger at the manse had been entertained by his housekeeper, 
an ignorant woman and therefore the less reprehensible, for had she 
not rolled up the clothes and hidden them in the byre, as the accused 
admitted? But David refused to shelter behind any misapprehension. 
He had admitted the man, what was done had been by his orders, and -- 
this in reply to a question by the minister of Bold-what be had 
done he was prepared to do again. The close of the first day's 
sederunt found the charges proven in substance by the admission, 
indeed by the vehement proclamation, of the accused.
</para>
<para>
For David there was no share in the clerical supper at the Cross Keys. 
He lay at a smaller inn in the Northgate, a resort of drovers and 
packmen, and spent such time as remained before bed in walking by Aller 
side, under the little hill crowned with kirk and castle, watching 
the salmon leap as they passed the cauld. Next day, the facts having 
been ascertained by admission, the Presbytery debated on principles. 
David was summoned to justify his conduct, -- and with a prayer that he 
might he given humility -- complied. With every sentence he rode 
deeper into the disapprobation of his hearers. He claimed that the 
cause of the helpless, however guilty, was the cause of Christ. Should 
a starving enemy be turned from the door, even though it was an 
enemy of the Kirk's?
</para>
<para>
&quot;Man, can ye no distinguish?&quot; thundered the minister of Bold.  &quot;Have you 
no logic in your head?&quot; And he quoted a dozen savage Scriptural 
precedents against him.
</para>
<para>
Was the Court, David asked, in a time of civil strife and war between 
brothers, clear that the precedent of Israel and the tribes of Canaan 
held? The men they fought against were professing Christians, indeed 
professed Presbyterians. Granted that they were in error, was it an 
error which could only be extirpated in blood?
</para>
<para>
It was an unlucky plea, for it brought forth a frenzied torrent of 
denials. The appeal of his opponents was not only to Scripture, but 
to the decisions of the Kirk. Was there not here, one cried, that 
rebellion which was as the sin of witchcraft? What became, cried 
another, of the deference which a young man was bound to show to the 
authority of his fathers in God? &quot;Are we to be like Rehoboam, who 
hearkened to callow and inexperienced youth, and not to those elders 
who partook of the wisdom of his father Solomon?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Presently David was silent. He remembered that meekness became him, 
and he had a sharp sense of the futility of argument. Respectfully 
he bowed his head to the blast, while a dozen of his brethren delivered 
extracts from their recent sermons.  The Moderator confirmed the 
sense of the Court.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Our young brother is lamentably estranged from Christ,&quot; he said in 
a voice which was charged with regret as well as with indignation. 
&quot;He is like the Church of Laodicea of whom it was written 'Because 
thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot, I will spue thee out of 
my mouth.' I tell you, sir, he that is not with us is against us, and 
that in the day of the Lord's judgments there can be no halting between 
two opinions. It is the duty of the Kirk to follow His plain commandment 
and to rest not till the evil thing be utterly destroyed from our midst, 
even as Barak pursued after the chariots to Harosheth of the Gentiles, 
and all the host of Sisera fell upon the edge of the sword, and not a 
man was left. You are besotted in your error, and till you repent you 
have no part in the commonwealth of Israel, for you are like Lot and 
have taken up your dwelling in the Cities of the Plain and have pitched 
your tents towards Sodom, whereas the Kirk, like Abram, dwelleth in 
the plain of Mamre which is in Hebron, and hath built there an 
altar to the Lord.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The Presbytery refrained from any judgment on the case, that being 
deferred till a later meeting, when, if necessary, evidence could 
be called; but in view of the fact that the minister of Woodilee had 
acknowledged his fault and exhibited contumacy thereanent, he was by 
a unanimous decision suspended from occupying the pulpit and dispensing 
the Sacrament in the parish, and from all other pastoral rights and 
duties. As the winter was close on hand, when evil roads lessened 
church attendance, it was agreed that spiritual needs would be met 
if Mr Fordyce were enjoined to conduct public worship alternately 
in Woodilee and Cauldshaw.
</para>
<para>
David rode home in a frame of mind which was neither sad nor glad. 
He felt no shame at his suspension, but he recognised with a pang 
the breadth of the gulf which separated him from his brethren and 
the ruin of those high hopes with which a year ago he had begun his 
ministry. He realised that he was but a poor ecclesiastic, for he 
could not feel that loyalty which others felt to a Kirk which was 
mainly the work of men's hands. &quot;They have lamentably perverted 
reason and justice &quot; -- he remembered Montrose's words, and yet 
most of them were honest men and pious men, and maybe their good 
on a wide computation was greater than their ill. It was his unhappy 
portion to have encountered the ill.  But if the Kirk cast him off 
he had Christ -- &quot; Other sheep I have which are not of this fold,&quot; 
was Christ's word -- and he must follow with all humility the light 
that was given to him. When the main trial came on he would not relent 
in his denunciation of the Wood, and his loss would be well repaid 
if, like Samson, he could bring down with him the pillars of Gaza. . . . 
He consoled himself thus, but he knew in his heart that he had no 
need of consolation, for the thought of Katrine was there like 
a live coal.
</para>
<para>
He came to the manse in the gloaming to find Isobel waiting for 
him in the road.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Heaven save us a'!&quot; she said, &quot;but there's an awfu' thing come to 
Woodilee. They've prickit a witch, and it's nane ither than puir 
Bessie Todd o' the Mains. Guid kens what they did till her, but a' 
night the clachan rang wi' her skirlin'. The pricker fand the Deil's 
mark on her back, and stappit a preen [*] intil it up to the head and 
nae binid came, and they burnt her feet Wi' lichtit candles, and hung 
her by the thumbs frae the cupples till they garred her own to 
awesome deeds. I canna believe it, the' puir doited body, but if the 
ae half is true she's far ben wi' the Adversary, and oh, sir, it's 
fearsome to think what wickedness can be hidden in the hert o' man. 
She said the Deil gie'd her a new name, whilk she wadna tell, and she 
owned that ilka Lord's Day when she sat under ye on the pu'pit stair 
she prayed to him -- ' Our Father, which wert in Heaven.' But whatever 
her faut it canna be riclit the way they guidit her, lickin' her wi' 
a bull's pizzle and burnin' the gums o' her till she yammers like a 
bitted powny. If she maun dee, let death come quick.  For the Lord's 
sake, Mr David, get her down to the Kirk Aller tolbooth, for the Shirra 
is kinder than yon red brock [**] o' a pricker. The verra sicht o' his 
wild een sends a grue to my banes-and Chasehope standin' by him and 
speakin' saft and wicked and smilin' like a cat wi' a mouse.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* pin.  ** badger.
</footnote>
<para>
David's heart sickened with disgust. Chasehope had turned the tables on 
him; he had diverted suspicion from himself by sacrificing a haif-witted 
woman. And yet this Bessie Todd had been a member of the Coven -- he 
had seen her grey locks flying in the Wood.  Chasehope was presiding 
at the examination and torture; he would no doubt take good care that 
no word of the truth came out in her delirium. And Isobel, who had 
denied with violence his own charges against this very woman, seemed 
to believe her confession. She was revolted by the cruelty, but convinced 
of the sin. That would no doubt be the feeling of the parish, for who 
could disbelieve avowals which must send the avower to a shameful death?
</para>
<para>
&quot;Where is the wretched woman?&quot; he asked.
</para>
<para>
&quot;They have her lockit up in Peter Pennecuik's girnel. . . . They've 
gotten a' they want, and they say that the Shirra has been sent for 
to carry her to the Kirk Aller steeple, whaur they confine the war-locks. . . . 
They're in the girnel now, and the feck o' Woodilee is waitin' at the 
door. Will you stop for a bite?
</para>
<para>
David waited only to stable his horse, and to buckle on the sword with 
which he had girt himself on the night of the second Beltane. He ran 
so fast towards the clachan that he was at Peter Pennecuik's house 
before Isobel, labouring in his wake, had turned the corner of the 
manse loan.
</para>
<para>
The night had fallen dark, but from inside the girnel came a flicker 
of light.  David had once before seen a witch hunt -- in Liberton as a 
boy -- and then there had been a furious and noisy crowd surging round 
the change-house where the accused was imprisoned.  But the Woodilee 
mob was not like that. It was silent, almost furtive. The granary was 
a large building, for it had once been the barn of the Mains farm; it 
was built of unmasoned stone cemented with mud, and had a deep roof 
of thatch; through the chinks of both walls and roof came thin streams 
of light. The spectators did not press on the door, but stood in groups 
some paces back, as hushed as in the kirk of a Sabbath. The light was 
too dim for David to recognise faces, but he saw that one man stood at 
the door as keeper, and knew him for Reiverslaw.
</para>
<para>
He had been drinking, and greeted the minister hilariously.
</para>
<para>
&quot;We've gotten ane o' the Coven,&quot; he whispered thickly, &quot;ane you saw 
yoursel' in the Wud.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;But Chasehope is among her accusers.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I ken, but we'll get that kailworm too, in' the Lord's guid time  At 
ony rate we're sure o' ane o' the deevils.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You fool, this is a trick of Chasehope's to divert attention from 
the Wood. This miserable woman has only confessed baimly faults, and 
on that he'll ride off scot free.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The truth penetrated slowly to Reiverslaw's foggy brain, but in the 
end he saw it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;God's curse on him, but ye're maybe right. What are ye ettlin', sir? 
Gie me the word and I'll come in by and wring the truth out o' him wi' 
my hands at his gutsy thrapple.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Bide where you are, and let none leave this place unless I bid you. 
I will see if I can get justice done.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But when Reiverslaw opened the heavy door to let him enter, the first 
glance told David that he had come too late.  The great empty place 
had straw piled at one end, and on a barrel in the centre a flickering 
lantern. By it, on an upturned barrow, sat the pricker, a paper in his 
hand and an inkhorn slung round his neck, his face wearing a smirking 
satisfaction. He had once been a schoolmaster, and at this moment he 
looked the part again. Behind him, sitting on kegs or squatted on the 
floor, were a dozen men -- Chasehope at his elbow, Mirehope, the miller, 
Peter Pennecuik, Nether Fennan -- David saw only a few faces in the dim 
light. Daft Gibbie by some means or other had gained entrance, and 
had perched himself in a crevice of the wall, whence his long 
shoeless legs dangled over Chasehope's head.
</para>
<para>
On the straw behind the lantern lay the witch. Her grey hair had fallen 
round her naked shoulders, and that and a ragged petticoat seemed her 
only garments. Even in the mirk David could see the cruel consequences 
of torture. 'Her feet were black and swollen, and her hands with 
dislocated thumbs were splayed out on the straw as if they were no 
longer parts of her body.  Her white face was hideously discoloured 
in patches, and her mouth was wide open, as if there were a tormenting 
fire within. She seemed delirious, for she gabbled and slavered uncouthly 
to herself, scarcely moving her lips.  Every now and then her thin 
breast was shaken with a frenzied shivering.
</para>
<para>
At the sight something gave in David's head. He felt the blood rush 
above his eyebrows, and a choking' at the back of his throat. Always 
a hater of cruelty, he had rarely seen its more monstrous forms, and 
the spectacle of this broken woman awoke in him a fury of remonstrance. 
He strode to the lantern and looked down on her, and then turned away, 
for he sickened. He saw the gimlet eyes of the pricker -- red like a broody 
hen's-and behind him the sullen secret face of Chasehope.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What devil's prank have you been at? &quot; he cried. -- &quot;Answer me, Ephraim 
Caird. Who is this mountebank, and what have you done to this 
unhappy woman?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;All has been done decently and in order,&quot; said Chasehope.  &quot;The 
Presbytery is resolved to free this parochine of the sin of witchcraft, 
and this worthy man, who has skill in siccan matters, has been sent to 
guide us. There is a commission issued frae the Privy Council, as ye 
may have heard, to try those that are accused, but the first needcessity 
is to find the witches and exhort them to confession. This woman, 
Elspeth Todd, is convict out o' her am mouth, and we've gotten a 
memorial o' the ill deeds she owns to.  Word has been despatched to 
the Shirra, and the morn nae doot he'll send and shift her to Kirk 
Aller.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The man spoke smoothly and not discourteously, but David would have 
preferred oaths and shouting. He put a great restraint on his temper.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How' did you extort the confession? Answer me that. You have tortured 
her body and driven her demented, and suffering flesh and crazed wits 
will avow any foolishness.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;We followed the means sanctioned by ilka presbytery in this land. It's 
weel kenned that flesh sell't to the Devil is no like common flesh, and 
the evil spirit will no speak without some sort o' compulsion.
</para>
<para>
David snatched the paper from the pricker and held it to the lantern. It 
was written clearly in a schoolmaster's hand, and though oddly and 
elliptically worded he made out the sum of it. As he read, there was 
silence in the place, except for the babbling of the woman and the 
mowing of Daft Gibbie from his perch.
</para>
<para>
It seemed to him a bedlamite chronicle.  The accused confessed that 
she had been guilty of charming, and had cured a cow on the Mains by 
taking live trouts from its belly. She had &quot;overlooked&quot; a boy, Hobbie 
Simson, at Nether Fennan, and he had sickened and lain for three months 
on his back. She had made a clay figure of one of the ewe-milkers at 
Mirehope and stuck pins into it, and the girl had suffered from pains 
and dizziness all summer. She had shot cattle with elf-bolts and had 
cursed a field on Windyways by driving round it a team of puddocks. The 
Devil had trysted with her on a rig of Mirehope's, and had given her a 
name which she would not reveal, and on the rig there had been ever since 
an intractable crop of thistles.  Her master visited her in the likeness 
of a black cat, and she herself had often taken the same likeness, and 
had travelled the country at night sitting on the crupper of one of 
the Devil's mares By means of the charm of the seven south-flowing 
streams and the nine rowan berries she had kept her meal --' ark full 
in the winter famine.  She confessed to having ridden John Humbie, a 
ploughman of Chasehope's, night after night to a witch-gathering at 
Charlie's Moss, so that John was done with weariness the next day, 
and unfit for work. The said John declared that he woke with the cry 
of &quot;Up horsie&quot; in his ear. At these gatherings she admitted to having 
baked and eaten the witch-cake -- a food made of grey bear and a black 
toad's blood and baked in the light of the moon, and at the eating 
had sung this spell:
</para>
<poem><verse><line>
&quot;Some lass maun gang wi' a kilted sark;</line><line>
Some priest maun preach in a thackless kirk;</line><line>
Thread maun be spun for a dead man's sark;</line><line>
A'maun be done ere the sang o' the lark.&quot;
</line></verse></poem>
<para>
She admitted that she had taken the pains of childbirth from women -- 
but what women she would not say-and that then the child had been 
born dead, and had so become a &quot;kain bairn&quot; for the Devil. Last, and 
most damning, she had between her shoulders the Devil's secret mark.
</para>
<para>
Some sentences from the document David read aloud, and in his voice 
there was bitter scorn. He believed most devoutly in the menace of 
witchcraft and in a Devil who could take bodily form and divert the 
course of nature to seduce 'human souls, but this catalogue of sins 
seemed to him too childish for credence. It was what any woman crazed 
with pain might confess in the hope of winning respite. Most of the 
details he remembered from his boyhood as common talk; the witch-cake 
rhyme he had sung himself; the charm to fill Bessie's meal-ark 
during the winter he knew to be false, for she had nearly died of 
want, and he had fed her from the manse kitchen. . . . He had seen 
her in the Wood, and yet there was no mention of the Wood. Chasehope 
had been present at the torture, and doubtless his fell influence 
had kept her rhapsody away from the point of danger. The poor soul 
was guilty, but not of this childishness.
</para>
<para>
He looked at her as she lay, mindless, racked, dying perhaps, and an 
awful conviction entered his mind.  She was a human sacrifice made by 
the Coven to their master. . . . He had read of such things, he 
half-remembered tales of them. . . Perhaps she was a willing victim -- 
he had heard of such -- coming forward with a perverted joy to confess 
her shame.  The torture -- that would be to stimulate her imagination. 
Isobel had always said she was weak in her mind. . . . She might have 
been chosen by lot in the kirk on Hallowmass -- e'en Chasehope was not 
her inquisitor, but the dark priest who conducted the ritual.
</para>
<para>
His anger and disgust rose to a fury. He tore the paper into little 
pieces and flung them in the pricker's face.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What doubly damned crime have you committed?&quot; he cried. &quot;You have 
tortured a wretched weak woman and taken down her ravings for truth. 
You have maybe killed her, murderer that you be! Your sins cry out to 
God, and yours above all, Ephraim Caird, whose hands I have myself 
seen dipped in the blackest witchcraft.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Chasehope's face was smiling blandly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I kenna what right ye have to meddle, sir,&quot; he said. &quot;The paper ye've 
torn is but a copy. The memorial itsel' will be in safe hands this night. 
Wad ye set yoursel' up against the Presbytery and the law o' the land, 
you that have been suspended this day, as is weel kenned, frae your 
rights as minister o' this parish? Ye'd best gang hame to your bed, 
sir, and pray that ye may be delivered frae the sin o' presumption. 
This woman will bide the nicht in this place under lock and key, till 
the Shirra sends for her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She will go with me to the manse this night-and, please God, I will 
nurse her back into life.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There could be no question of the consternation of the audience -- 
it almost equalled his own. Chasehope alone kept his composure; the 
others stared in horror and growing anger.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That will no be permitted,&quot; came from the lowering Mirehope, and 
&quot;A bonny minister,&quot; cried another, &quot;to file his house wi' a dirty 
witch. He maun himsel' be ower great Wi' the Deil.&quot;  The pricker 
twisted and grinned, and his eyes watched approvingly the spasms 
of the woman on the straw.
</para>
<para>
David was carried out of himself, and before he was aware of it 
had drawn his sword.
</para>
<para>
&quot;She goes to the manse. I will suffer no let or hindrance in this 
plain duty. Whoever opposes me will rue it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Wad ye deforce the session?&quot; Mirehope shouted in a voice like a bull 
and got to his feet. From the idiot on his perch came an unexpected 
encouragement.  &quot;Fine, sir.  Fine, my bonny Mr David,&quot; cried Gibbie. 
&quot;Stap your sword in his wame. I'll uphaud ye wi' my staff, for the 
puir kimmer was ill-guidit.  I couldna sleep a wink a' nicht for 
her skellochs.&quot;
</para>
<para>
A voice broke in on the storm, and David saw that it was the new 
tenant of Crossbasket.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Put up your blade, sir,&quot; he said. &quot;There's no need for fighting 
among Christian folk.  These honest men have been following the light 
vouchsafed to them, and if there's blame to be cast it's on this 
pricker chiel that comes from I know not where.&quot;
</para>
<para>
There was something in the quiet tones which fell like oil on yeasty 
water. David settled back his sword into its sheath, Mirehope sat 
down again on his keg, Chasehope turned his head to the speaker with 
the first sign of discomposure he had yet shown.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye'll forgive me, neighbours,&quot; Mark continued, &quot;since I'm but new come 
to the parish, but I've seen a hantle o' the world and I would be wae 
to see honest men run their heids against a stone wall. The woman may 
be a' you say and waur, but it looks as if her handlin' had been ower 
sair, and I'm muckle mista'en if she'll no be a corp ere morning. Consider, 
friends. -- This is no a court constituted by a Privy Council commission; 
it's nae mair than a private gathering o' well-wishers to the Kirk and 
the Law. In my time I've meddled ower much Wi' the Law for my comfort, 
and I ken something about the jaud. The Law has no cognisance of a 
pricker or onything like him, and if well-meaning folk under his guiding 
compass the death of a man or woman that has not been duly tried and 
sentenced, the Law will uphaud it to be murder, just as muckle as 
if a caird had cut a throat at a dyke-side.  I greatly fear ye've 
brought yourselves into its danger by this day's work.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mark spoke with an air of anxious and friendly candour that called for 
no opposition. Indeed it was plain that more than one of his hearers 
had similar doubts of their own.
</para>
<para>
&quot;The wife's weel eneuch,&quot; said Mirehope. &quot; Ye'll no kill a tough 
auld greyhen like that wi' a raxed thumb or brunt taes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I hope you' re right, neighbour,&quot; said Mark. &quot;But if she suld dee, 
what will ye say to the Shirra -- and what to the Court o' Justiciar? 
Ye've taken doun frae her mouth a long screed o' crimes, but I'm of 
the minister's opinion, that they're what any distrackit body wad 
admit that wasna verra strong in the intellectuals and fand her paiks 
[*] ower sair for her. Lord bless me, but they're maist o' them 
owercomes I heard at my grannie's knee. I counsel ye in all friendliness 
to let the minister do his best to keep her in life, or it sticks in 
my mind that Woodilee will mak' an ill showing when the King's judges 
redd up the business.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* punishment.
</footnote>
<para>
Chasehope angrily dissented, but he had few supporters. Most of the 
others wore an anxious air.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I come to the matter of the pricker.&quot; Mark's homely wheedling tones 
were like those of a pack-man in an alehouse kitchen. &quot;I ken nocht 
about him, but I canna say I like the looks o' him. I doubt if I 
was strapped up by the thumbs and had yon luntin' een glowering at 
me I wad speak wi' strange tongues mysel'. It's no that difficult 
for a pawky body to gar a weaker vessel obey his will. . . . Get up 
off that barry,&quot; he said sharply. &quot;Stand ayont the licht till I 
have a look at ye.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The words came out like a crack of a whip-lash. The atmosphere of the 
place had suddenly changed, the woman's mutte rings had ceased, and, 
as David stood back from the lantern, he saw that Mark had moved 
forward and was beside the pricker, a yard from him, with the light 
between them, and the faces of both in full view of the rest.  The 
one shambled to his feet and set his hand to his head as if to 
avert a blow, while the other, his dark face like a thundercloud, 
stood menacingly over against him.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Look at me,&quot; Mark cried. &quot;Look me in the een if there's that muckle 
smeddum in your breast.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The eyes of the pricker were like small dark points in his dead-white 
eyeballs.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ye're one Kincaid, but ye've gone by many names. Ye've been a dominie 
and a stickit minister, a thief and a thief-taker, a spy and a witch-finder, 
and ye'd fain be a warlock if the Deil thocht your soul worth half a 
bodle.  . . Turn your een to the licht, and keep them there. . . .  
Answer me ere the Pit open for ye. Was there ever a word in your mouth 
that wasna as false as hell? Say 'I am a liar, like my father the 
Devil afore me.'&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am a liar,&quot; the man croaked.
</para>
<para>
Mark stretched out one hand and passed it over the pricker's brow.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's aneath here?&quot; he asked.  &quot;Honest banes? Na, na, rottenness like 
peat.&quot; To the horrified spectators he seemed to pass his hand backwards 
and forwards through the man's head as if a knife had gone through a 
pat of butter.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's in your een? &quot;he cried, leaning forward. &quot;I see the fires of 
hell and the worm that dieth not. God! the bleeze o' them is keekin' 
through!&quot;
</para>
<para>
For a moment it seemed to all that a ruddy glow of flame leaped to the 
roof, and Daft Gibbie in his agitation fell from his seat and rushed 
to the door. The idiot flung it open and screamed beyond Reiverslaw 
to the waiting crowd. &quot;Come in bye, every soul o' ye. The pricker that 
tormented puir Bessie is getting his paiks, and Glee'd Mark is drawin' 
hell fire out o' him.  Come in bye and see the bonny sicht.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Reiverslaw and a dozen others entered the granary; the door remained 
half open and the night wind swept up the dust and chaff of the floor 
and made the red light seem a monstrous wavering cloud that hung like 
an infernal aureole over the wretched man.
</para>
<para>
Mark had him by the shoulder. &quot;And what's this?&quot; he cried, tearing his 
doublet aside and showing his bare throat.  &quot;As I live by bread, it's a 
Deil's pap!&quot; Certainly to the audience it seemed that above the breast 
grew a small black teat.
</para>
<para>
The creature was in an extremity of terror. Fear -had so drained the 
blood from his eyeballs that the pupils seemed to burn with an uncanny 
brightness, even after the red had gone out of the light.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's nae bull's pizzle needit to make this wauf [*] body confess.&quot; 
Mark's iron grip was still on -his shoulder. &quot;If ony neighbour has 
ony misdeed in his mind, I'll warrant to wring it oot o' the pricker 
as glib as a bairn's schule-lesson.  I'll mak' him own to the Black 
Mass in the Kirk on Hallowe'en.
</para>
<footnote>
* feeble.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;There's nane speaks? Weel, we'll leave the dott'rel to his own 
conscience.&quot;
</para>
<para>
He relaxed his grip and the man dropped gibbering and half-senseless 
on the floor.
</para>
<para>
&quot;There's your bonny pricker,&quot; said Mark to Chasehope. &quot;There's your chosen 
instrument for getting truth out o' auld wives. Do as you like Wi' him, 
but I counsel ye to get him furth o' the parish if he be a friend o' 
yours, or the folk will hae him in the deepest hole in Woodilee burn.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Chasehope, white and stammering, found himself deserted by his allies, 
but he still showed fight.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I protest,&quot; he cried.  &quot;I kenna what hellish tricks ye've played on a 
worthy man
</para>
<para>
&quot;Just the same tricks as he played on the auld wife-a wee bit o' speirin'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;It's no my blame,&quot; said Chasehope, changing his ground, &quot;if I have leaned 
on a broken reed. The man was sent here by folk that vouched for his worth.  
And nevertheless, whatever the weakness o' the instrument, the Lord 
has wrocht through him to produce a confession -- &quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay. Just so,&quot; said Mark dryly.  &quot;But what kind o' instrument is yon to 
procure the truth? Will ye get caller water out o' a foul pipe?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;The Lord works -- &quot; Chasehope began, but Mark broke in on him. His dark 
mocking face, in which the squint of the left eye was now most noticeable 
and formidable, was thrust close to the other's.
</para>
<para>
&quot;See here, my bonny man. -- Ye can get any mortal daftness out o' man 
or woman if ye first put fear on them  Ye've seen the auld wife and 
ye've seen the pricker. Do you come forrit forenent the licht. Ye're a 
buidly chiel, and weel spoken o' for canniness. Ye can keep your thumbs 
unraxed and your hide unscorched for me, but by the God abune us I'll 
warrant that in ten minutes by the knock I'll hae ye confessin' fauts 
that will keep the haill parish waukrife till Yule. . . Will ye thole 
the trial?&quot;
</para>
<para>
The big man shrank back.  &quot;Na, na. I kenna what spell the Deil has gien 
ye, but ye'll no lay it on me.
</para>
<para>
&quot;So muckle the better for yoursel'.&quot; Mark turned to the others. &quot;Ye've 
a seen, neighbours, that my spell, as he ca's it, was nae mair than just 
an honest speirin'. I'm loth to think that this clachan should suffer 
for what has been done this day, so the sooner -we get the wife to bed 
and weel-tended the better for us a'.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;She shall go to the manse at once,&quot; said David. He had been examining 
the tortured woman, who had passed into unconsciousness, and it seemed 
to him that her heart beat very faintly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;That will be wisest, no doubt,&quot; said Mark, but at this point Chasehope 
found support in his protest.  Mirehope, Nether Fennan, and the miller 
exchanged anxious looks.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Take her to Alison Geddie,&quot; they cried. &quot;She has a toom [*] bed, and 
it's near by.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* empty.
</footnote>
<para>
&quot;She will go to my own house,&quot; said David, &quot;and be nursed by my own hand.  
I trust no man or woman of you after to-day's devilry.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The place had filled up and it seemed to him that the better part of the 
parish were now onlookers. It was clear that a considerable number were 
on Chasehope's side, for the mention of the manse had wakened a curious 
disquiet in many faces. David solved the problem by dragging out from the 
back of the granary a wooden sledge used for drawing peats. He covered 
it with straw and laid the woman on it.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Reiverslaw!&quot; he cried. &quot;You take the one end and I'll take the other.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The farmer advanced, and for a second it looked as if he might be 
prevented by force. He turned fierce eyes on the crowd. &quot;Ay, sir. 
I'll dae your bidding. . . .  And if ony man lifts his hand to prevent 
me, he'll get a sarkfu' o' broken banes.&quot;
</para>
<para>
The strange cortege moved out into the darkness, without opposition.  
It may have been the honest feeling of the majority that let it go; 
it may have been the truculent Reiverslaw, or David with his white 
face and the sword bobbing at his belt: but most likely it was the 
fact that Mark Riddel walked by the minister's side.
</para>
<para>
Bessie Todd died just before morning.  Isobel received her old gossip 
with tears and lamentations, laid her in the best bed, washed and salved 
her wounds, and strove to revive her with cordials. But the trial had 
been too hard for a frail woman far down in the vale of years. David 
watched all night by her bedside, and though at the end she became 
conscious, her mind was hopelessly unhinged, and she babbled nonsense 
and scraps of childish rhymes. If he could not pray with her, he 
prayed by her, pleading passionately for the departing soul.
</para>
<para>
As Isobel straightened the body and closed the eyes, she asked 
anxiously if there had been any space given for repentance.
</para>
<para>
David shook his head.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Puir thing, she got the Devil's fee and bountith, and muckle guid 
it did her. Let's hope, sir, that afore her mind left her she had 
grace given her to renounce him and creep to the Mercy Seat.
</para>
<para>
We'll gar some folks in Woodilee look gash [*] for this. There was a 
time, Mr David, when I wad have held ye back, but my word now is 
Gang forrit, till ye rive this parish Wi' the fear o' God, and sinners 
we ken o' will howl on their knees for as quiet a death-bed as Bessie's.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* ghastly.
</footnote>
</chapter>

<chapter>
<chapheader>
<chapnum>Chapter XVII</chapnum>
<title>Woodilee And Calidon</title>
</chapheader>
<para>
<emph>THE</emph> pricker disappeared from the parish in the night.  The dead woman 
was buried decently in the kirkyard, and her male kin attended the 
funeral as if there had never been a word against her fair fame. There 
was indeed a certain revulsion of feeling among plain people in Woodilee.  
Bessie had been liked; she was regretted and pitied; the downfall 
of the pricker seemed to invalidate her confession.  But there was a 
party -- Chasehope was the leader-who held that solemn things had been 
trifled with and that the minister had gone far to bring God's curse 
on the parish.  He had laid his hand to his sword like a malignant, 
and had made light of an awful confession before the pricker had been 
discredited.  Bessie might have been innocent of witchcraft, but in 
his plea for her he had shown a discreditable leniency towards the 
sin. Women might be old and frail, but if they were leagued with
Satan it was enough to put them beyond the pale of Christian sympathy. 
The minister was patently rebellious and self-willed, a scorner of 
the yoke of Kirk and Word.
</para>
<para>
But the night's events caused a notable increase in one reputation. 
The new tenant of Crossbasket had shown himself an ill. man to counter.  
He had the interests of the parish at heart and had given wise advice, 
and he had confounded the pricker with a terrible ease. Clearly a man 
with power; nor was there reason to think that the power was not given 
him from on high. A hard man to gainsay, as even Chasehope had found.  
His friendliness had made him popular, and folk were slipping into 
neighbourly ways with him.  Soon he would have been &quot;Mark&quot; to most, 
and &quot;Glee'd Mark&quot; behind his back.  But from that night formality 
and decorum invested him; he was &quot;Crossbasket&quot; even to the children, 
and the humbler doffed their bonnets when he drew near.
</para>
<para>
He came to David one evening when the candle was lit in the study.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What arts were yon,&quot; the minister asked, &quot;that turned the pricker from 
a man into a jelly?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mark had sat himself in a deep armchair covered with black leather, 
which had been David's father's and had come to the manse from the 
Pleasance after the roup.  He had crossed his legs and let his head 
lie back while he puffed his tobacco-pipe.  He laughed as he answered:
&quot;A simple divertisement, but good enough for such a caddis-worm.  A 
pinch of Greek powder in the lantern, and for the rest a device I 
learned among the tinklers in Hungary when some of us gentleman-cavaliers 
had to take to the hills and forests for a season.  But the body was 
easy game. The sight of my een was enough to melt his wits. . . .  
Chasehope's another kind of lad-there's metal there, though it's 
maybe of the Devil's forging. . . .  But for the moment we've fairly 
houghed his shelty.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You saw how distraught he was,&quot; Mark continued, &quot;ay, and others beside 
him, when you offered to carry the wife to the manse. The reason wasna 
ill to seek. When she was being tortured to confession, Chasehope was 
beside her and mastered her with his een. . . .  She was one of the 
Coven; you tell me. But once in your hands he was feared she would tell 
things of more moment than the blethers they wrung out of her. . . .  
She didna speak? Ay, I thought she was ower far gone.  It was maybe as 
well that the puir thing died, for after the handling she got there 
was small bodily comfort left for her.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;By her death her tormentors are guilty in God's sight of murder,&quot; 
said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;No doubt. And maybe also in the sight of the Law.  That's why I say 
we have houghed Chasehope's mare for him.  He canna ride off do a 
pretended zeal for witch-hunts, for this one has notably miscarried.  
This pricker business is looked askance at by those that ken best, and 
it's certain it has no countenance frae the Justiciar. They've killed 
the wife with it, and their pricker will not show face again in this 
countryside. What becomes, think you, of the braw commission of the 
Privy Council that Chasehope had the procuring of? The thing is begowked 
before it is begun.  The ministers of Kirk Aller and Bold and yon 
knock-kneed haverel, the laird of Killiequhair, will e'en hae to content
themselves at home, and Chasehope, in place of hiding his sins behind 
his zeal for burning witches, is left with his repute a wee thing 
touched, like a bad egg.  There's folk in the parish beginning to 
speir questions that never speired them before.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am convinced that the woman Bessie Todd was a human sacrifice, 
decided on by the Coven, and maybe accepted of her free-will.  I 
have heard that every now and then they must pay such a teind to 
Hell. .  .  She was weak in the mind, remember.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I had the same notion myself.  No, I wasna there when the pricker was 
busy, but them that were tell me that he put the feck of the words 
intil her mouth.  That would consort with what I've heard of the 
black business elsewhere.  She was doomed to die, as surely as if 
she had stood in the doomster's cart. . . .   But I have found out 
another thing.  Our neighbour Chasehope is a King-Deil.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;What in Heaven's name is that?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You may well speir.  He is the priest of the Coven, but he is more, 
for he is a kind of Deil on his own account.  That is why you saw them 
in the Wood bowing before him and nozzling him like dogs. There's been 
King-Deils before this in Scotland.  Francie Stuart was one-him that 
was Earl of Bothwell in the days of James the Saxt, and he had a braw 
Coven down by Dunbar and the Bass.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;And the man an elder of the kirk!&quot; David exclaimed.  &quot;The words of 
Scripture are never off his lips, and more than once he has reproved 
me for sin.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That's the lad.  There's a holy pleasure to be gotten out of hypocrisy. 
And yet -- and yet! I'll wager that Chasehope has no doubt but that he 
is a redeemed soul and will get an abundant entrance at the hinder end.  
That Kirk of yours has so cunningly twisted religion that a man can 
grow fat in his own sins and yet spend his time denouncing the faults 
of others, for he is elected into grace, as they call it, and has got 
some kind of a title to Heaven.  I'm a plain body that canna see how 
God and the Devil can be served at the one time, but there's many a 
chiel makes a trade of it. They've gotten one creel that holds their 
treasure in Heaven and one full of the lusts of the flesh, and though 
they ettle to coup the latter before the day of death, they are 
confident that it winna canker what's in the other creel.  It's 
queer doctrine, and maybe I havena riddled it out right, for I'm 
loth to believe that an honest man could uphold it, though I've 
heard it often propounded with an unction that made my flesh creep.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;You speak not of the Christian doctrine of election, but of its 
perversion,&quot; said David solemnly.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Weel, it's the perversion that has gotten the upper hand these days.  
The Kirk has made the yett of grace ower wide for sinful men, and all 
ither yetts ower narrow.  It has banned innocence and so made a calling 
of hypocrisy, for human nature is human nature, and if you tell a man 
that ilka honest pleasure is a sin in God's sight he finds a way to 
get the pleasure and yet keep the name for godliness.  And mind you, 
the pleasures he enjoys with a doubtful conscience will no long be 
honest. There will be a drop of black ink in the spring water that makes 
it drumly, and ere he kens he'll be seeking a stronger brew.  The 
upshot will be that folk who sit under you in the kirk will dance 
in the Wood on the auld heathen holy-days, and the man whose word 
gangs furthest with the Presbytery will be hugging lusts to his bosom 
that would make a common foot-sentinel spew.  For they've all their 
sure title, as they call it-they're all elected into grace, so what 
for should they fash themselves?&quot;
</para>
<para>
Mark's face was smiling, but his voice had a note in it which 
was not humour.
</para>
<para>
&quot;You laugh,&quot; David cried, &quot;but I'm nearer weeping.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I laugh, but it's to prevent me cursing.&quot; The other's jaw had set and 
there was a smouldering fire in his eyes.  &quot;I tell you the Cities of 
the Plain were less an offence to Almighty God than this demented twist 
of John Calvin that blasts and rots a man's heart.  For if it makes here 
and there a saint, it is like a dung-heap to hatch out sinners.&quot;
</para>
<para>
David was suspended from officiating in the kirk, but he was still a 
placed minister and there was no embargo upon his utterances elsewhere.  
So while every alternate Sabbath Mr Fordyce came over from Cauldshaw 
to occupy the pulpit, and in defiance of the Presbytery ate his dinner 
at the manse, on the others David preached in the kirkyard.  Twenty 
years later these sermons in the open air were remembered, when Mr 
Fordyce, then far advanced in age, was driven from Cauldshaw to hold 
preachings in the Deer Syke. . . There was a novelty in the practice 
which brought many the first day; and on later Sabbaths the audience 
increased, for David had never delivered such discourses in the Woodilee 
pulpit.  One famous sermon was on the peril of trifling with salvation.  
A soul was not saved by an easy miracle, but must mount hardly and 
painfully to eternal life; to accept grace lightly was to cast scorn 
upon the atonement of the Cross.  But doctrine figured little, nor were 
there any of the forecasts of hell and judgment which were the common 
proof of an earnest minister. &quot;He is a guid dowg,&quot; Richie Smail was 
reported to have said: &quot;he wad wyse folk gently to Christ.&quot; Something 
of the joy in his own heart revealed itself in a peculiar tenderness; 
often there were wet eyes among his hearers, and the children, squatted 
on the grass or on the flat gravestones, forbore to whisper and fidget 
and listened with a grave attention.  His elders did not attend; indeed, 
with the exception of Peter Pennecuik, they forbore even to grace the 
orthodox ministrations of Mr Fordyce. Chasehope and his friends walked 
the five moorland miles to Bold to sup on the strong fare of Mr Ebenezer 
till such time -- early in the New Year, it was believed -- as the 
Presbytery pronounced final judgment on their minister.
</para>
<para>
Woodilee had split into two factions.  There was the party of the 
Session, who held David to be a malignant, or at best a Laodicean, 
one who gave a doubtful sound of doctrine, a rebel, a despiser of 
authority, a preacher of a cold morality. To this side belonged many 
of undoubted piety who had been shocked by his defiance and gave ready 
ear to whispered scandal.  Of David's party were respected professors 
like Richie Smail and Rab Prentice, several godly women, a decent hind 
or two, and a tail which was neither godly nor respected. Among his 
supporters were some whom he suspected of dealings with the Wood, and 
in general he had with him all that was least esteemed in the parish. 
To have Reiverslaw-who was again drinking hard -- as his prophet, and 
Daft Gibbie as his fugleman, did not enhance the credit of his cause.  
Between the Jews and the Samaritans there were no dealings. Isobel, 
now a hot partisan, had quarrelled on this score with her nearest and 
dearest, and, encountering Jean of Chasehope -- foot in the clachan and 
being goaded by her tongue, fell on her tooth and nail and chased her 
into Peter Pennecuik's kail-yard. Amos Ritchie, too, had declared his 
colours, and woe be to the man who in his presence spoke ill of the 
minister. He was no longer employed by the farmers around the kirkton, 
so the smithy fire was mostly unlit, while the smith did odd jobs at 
Reiverslaw and Calidon.  Only the new tenant of Crossbasket mixed 
amicably with all.  On the road he had the same greeting for Chasehope 
as for the minister, and he would drink a stoup at Lucky Weir's with 
Amos or Mirehope, Reiverslaw or the miller, in all good-fellowship.  
But this popularity rested more perhaps on fear than on affection.  
Dark whisperings began to spread.  &quot;What ken we o' Cross-basket?&quot; 
said one.  &quot;Nae doot he's frae Teviotside, but whaur was he afore 
that?  He never learned that glower on Jed Water.&quot; &quot;He's a pawky 
carle,&quot; said another, &quot;and ye canna get far ben wi' him. There's mair 
in his heid than the Word ever learned him.  I wadna wonder some fine 
day to see him gang off in a fuff and a lowe.  Ye say he has the 
speech o' a guid Christian? Weel-a-weel, a soo may whistle, though 
it has an ill mouth for it.&quot;
</para>
<para>
By late November winter should have closed in upon the glen with an iron 
hand.  The first frosts should have stripped the trees, and the first 
snows lain at the dyke-back. But that year it seemed as if the seasons 
had gone widdershins.  November was bright and calm, and the harvest, 
delayed by October rains, was soon gathered.  Oats and bear, flax and rye -- 
the little crops were housed within a week, and, since the snows tarried, 
it was the middle of December before the cattle were in the byres and 
yards and the sheep brought down to the infields.  The countryside 
presented a strange spectacle.  Heather lingered in bloom, and the 
leaves were on the ashes and hazels till long after Hallowmass.  When 
they did fall there were no frosts to crumble them, and they lay in 
great drifts in the woods and by the roadside, and children dived 
and scrambled among them. There were swallows still in the thatch 
in November, and Amos Ritchie, when he went out to the moss to intercept 
the travelling skeins of wild geese, found that the curlews and plovers 
had not yet flitted to the seashore and that there were no wildfowl 
to be seen in all the blue heavens.  Morning after morning the sun 
rose clear as in June, the nights were mild and starlit, herbs which 
should have been snug below the earth sprouted prematurely, the 
hedgehog and the badger had forgotten to go to sleep, and only the 
short hours of light showed that it was midwinter.  Reiverslaw, always 
a scorner of precedents, kept his sheep on the hills, where the 
pasture was as rich as in summer-time.
</para>
<para>
But the old and the wise frowned and shook their heads.  One said it was 
such a year as '71, of which his grandsire had told, when winter did not 
begin till February and did not end till June.  Another recalled &quot;saxteen 
fifteen, named the Lown Year, when there was nae frost, and a blight o' 
worms and cawterpillars and hairy objects fell on the land.&quot;
</para>
<para>
And every wife in the parish, when at Christmas the grass was still 
rank and high and hips and haws still hung on the bushes, quoted 
dolefully the saw that &quot;a green Yule makes a fat kirkyard.&quot;
</para>
<para>
But if there was a presage of calamity in it for the thoughtful, it was 
weather of a rare beauty for those who had the heart to enjoy it.  There 
was no sickness in the parish and as yet no hunger, so David's pastoral 
duties were light.  He was on the uplands most of the day, and now 
his feet took him away from the Hill of Deer and the north ridge of 
Rood and across the glen to the hills between Calidon and Aller, for 
there he could meet Katrine with no fear of interfering parishioners.  
The garrison had been withdrawn from Calidon, since Nicholas was known 
to be out of the country and Mistress Saintserf was regarded as well 
affected, but David did not go there.  So long as the short afternoons 
were crystal under a canopy of blue and the sun set behind Herstane 
Craig in gold and crimson, the place for lovers was the hill, for 
there the world was narrowed to themselves.
</para>
<para>
But the minister's conscience smote him at last, and on New Year's 
morning he presented himself at Calidon door.  By arrangement Katrine 
was not there, and from her aunt he got the tempestuous welcome 
which custom ordained as appropriate to the season.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Sit ye down, sir, and prie our shortcake and October.  Yours is the 
first stranger foot that has crossed this threshold, and it's surely 
propitious that it should be a minister's.  Our am Mr James is lyin' 
again, for this lown weather doesna 'gree wi' him, though it's hard 
to say what 'grees wi' him, for the creature's body is sair failed. . . .  
It's mony a day since we cast een on ye here, Mr David, and siccan 
days as they've been for me and mine.
</para>
<para>
She descanted on the troubles of the autumn, her success in saving 
Calidon from being sequestered -- &quot;Peter Dobbie, him that's our doer, 
is far ben wi' Wariston, ye maun ken, and worthy Mr Rintoul in the West 
Kirk said a word in the right lug &quot; -- on the difficulty in getting funds 
to Nicholas Hawkshaw at Utrecht, on the garrisoning of Calidon. 
&quot;They punished our yill, but they fashed us little, for they were 
sair hadden down by Katrine.&quot; But she said nothing of Mark, though 
in the end she had been made privy to that business, and she did not 
hint at the trouble in Woodilee which was the talk of the country.  
Behind all her garrulity lurked a certain embarrassment, and it 
did not make David's task the easier.
</para>
<para>
At last he took his courage in both hands.
</para>
<para>
&quot;I came here this morn for a purpose,&quot; he said, and with halting voice 
and a fiery face he made his confession.  The old woman regarded him 
with eyes that strove to express amazement and failed; it was clear 
that she had had her suspicions.
</para>
<para>
But her words when she spoke were those of one who had been startled 
out of all propriety.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Heard ye ever the like?&quot; she cried.  &quot;Man, d'ye ken of whom ye speak? 
Katrine is a leddy born -- there's nae aulder or prouder stock in the land -- 
and ye're the oy [*] o' the miller o' the Roodfoot, and ye seek to make 
her your marrow.[**] We ken that the warld is coupit upside-down these 
days, but this fair cowes a'.  Guid faith, ye're no blate.&quot;
</para>
<footnote>
* grandson.	** mate.
</footnote>
<para>
David held his peace, for he had no answer. He felt in the pith of 
his bones his immense audacity.
</para>
<para>
&quot;How would the lassie set wi' a manse, think ye?&quot; she continued.  
&quot;She's been brocht up amang papists and prelatists, and though she's 
had mony a swatch o' the Gospel frae honest Mr James, she's no muckle 
wiser than a babe.  Forbye, she's a daft quean that wad never mak' a 
'sponsible minister's wife. Think ye that the King's court and dancing '
and glee-singin' and ridin' on a horse is a guid preparation for a 
moorland parish and a fower-room house? How will ane that's been used 
to velvet and pearlins tak' wi' linsey-wolsey and drugget?&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;That is for Katrine to decide,&quot; he said humbly. &quot;I have heard that 
true love can glorify a cot-house.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Havers!&quot; she cried.  &quot; There's a decency in a' things and ye canna 
mate a blood-horse wi' a cadger's powny.  Wedlock, as I weel ken, is nae 
business o' kissin' and rhymin', but a sober contrack, and if twa folks 
are gaun to live cantily the gither, they maun see that mair than their 
hearts are weel agreed. There maun be a guid chance -- there's nae 
certainty in this perishin' world -- o' a bien doun-settin', and a 
sufficiency o' gear, and a life that will be guid for baith. What 
say ye to that? A minister's wife!  Guidsakes, the Session wad think 
her a randy, for she'd lauch at their solemnities, and your brither 
ministers, wha are maistly cotters' sons, wad be fleyed by her 
gentrice, and the folk wad be as feared o' her as a chuckie o' 
a pyot. Ye' re a man o' sense, Mr David.  Ye canna deny that the 
thing is past a' reason.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Oh, Mistress,&quot; said the unhappy David. &quot;There's truth in what you say -- 
I cannot gainsay it. But I plead that true hearts may break down
every obstacle, and Katrine's and mine are as true to each other as the 
dial to the sun. There was a time when you were young yourself, Mistress -- 
you mind that then there was no rule for lovers but their love.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I mind weel,&quot; she said more gently, &quot;but it's for auld folk to be 
eident and save the young frae folly. . . .  I'll no deny that I 
would be blithe to see Katrine provided for.  She's a fine lassie, but 
forbye mysel' she has nae near kin to mind her, now that Nicholas is 
put to the horn and hidin' amang the Hollanders.  Fine I wad like to 
see her in safe hands. . . .  But what can ye offer, Mr David? It's 
no as if ye were on firm ground yoursel'. They tell me ye're cast out 
wi' your Session and are bickerin' wi' the Presbytery, and ony day may 
be turned out o' Woodilee and maybe excommunicate by the Kirk. That's 
a braw prospect for a wife. Wad ye have Katrine tak' a creel on her 
back, like a tinkler quean, her that has in her the bluid o' the 
Black Douglas and the auld kings o' Scots? Ye've made a bonny hash 
o' things, for ane that's ettlin' to be a bridegroom.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I am set about with perplexities, and the hands of many are against 
me.  But I have Katrine on my side-and I was in hopes that I might 
have you, Mistress.&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;I'm no against ye,&quot; she said, and there was kindness in her eye.  
&quot;Never think that.  I've heard the clash o' the country and I've riddled 
it out, and by my way o't ye've taken the richt road.  I ken nocht 
about the Wud, but I ken something o' the tods arid foumarts o' Woodilee, 
and for the business o' glee'd Mark Kerr it's no a Hawkshaw or a Yester 
or a Saintserf would cast a stone at ye.  But it's solemn truth that 
ye've gotten on the wrang side o' the Kirk, and the Kirk is your 
calling, Mr David.
</para>
<para>
Ye maun ken that I've had mony a crack Wi' our Mr James anent ye, and if 
it's the pure Gospel word I'm seekin' it's to him I'll gang and no to 
Kirk Aller. I'll tell ye what he said. 'Mr David,' says he, 'has his 
plew on the wrang rig.  He wad hae made a grand sodger, and if he had 
been a papist he wad hae made a guid monk. He has the makings o' a 
saint and he has the makings o' a warrior, but a manse is no the place 
for him. For,' says Mr James, 'he canna like me withdraw himsel' into 
his closet -- he is ower hale o' body and het in spirit for that -- 
and he canna walk doucely as the Kirk ordains. For, if he sees wrang 
he maun set it richt, though the Kirk tells him to bide still, and 
he'll no put his conscience in the keeping o' any Presbytery.  He's 
ower staunch a Presbyterian,' says he, 'for the Kirk of Scotland as 
at present guidit, whilk is a kind o' Papery wi' fifty Papes instead 
o' ane.'&quot;
</para>
<para>
&quot;Maybe that's the truth,&quot; said David.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Ay, it's the truth, and I'm blithe to hear ye acknowledge it. . . .  
But we'll hae the lassie in, for this crack concerns her maist.  The 
cunnin' limmer to keep sac mum and begowk her auld auntie!&quot;
</para>
<para>
When Katrine appeared, her cheeks a little flushed and her eye bright, 
she was greeted by Mistress Grizel with surprising gentleness.
</para>
<para>
&quot;What's this I hear o' ye, lassie? Ye've gotten a jo and never 
telled me! . . .  Na, na, my lamb, dinna be feared that I'll flyte 
on ye.  It's a road we maun a' travel, and nae doubt wedlock is a 
holy and blessed state and a hantle better than spinsterhood,
for a woman maun either be guidit by a husband or be subject to a' 
and sindry.  But it's a serious step, and wants carefu' and prayerfu' 
thocht.  I've hal a word wi' Davie -- for I tak' the liberty to Ca' him 
Davie as if he were my am son -- and as in duty bound I've set forth 
the difficulties.  I say naething against ye as a man, Davie. Ye're 
wise -- like and weel-spoken, and ye've gentle ways, if ye hae na gentle 
bluid.  But I say muckle against ye as a minister, and I canna 
picture Katrine as the leddy o' a manse.  Forbye there's the solemn 
fact that ye've made Woodilee ower het a bit to bide in, and what 
ye've done there ye'll dae in ony ither parochine in the land. . . .  
Sae hearken to me, sir. Ye've mista'en your trade, like mony anither 
honest lad, but the faut can bemended. Ye're young eneuch to start 
in a better.&quot;
</para>
<para>
Katrine had moved to David's side and laid her hand on his shoulder.  
&quot;Aunt Grizel would have you forsake the Kirk for the world,&quot; she 
laughed.
</para>
<para>
&quot;But I am solemnly vowed to God's service,&quot; he said.
</para>
<para>
&quot;Nae doot,&quot; said Mistress Grizel.  &quot;But a man serves his Maker as weel 
in buckskin as in a Geneva gown-better, if a' tales be true. This is 
the counsel of ane that wishes ye weel, you and that denty lass at your 
elbuck.  Mak your peace wi' the Kirk-submit yoursel' to the Presbytery -- 
ye need gie up nane o' your views, but submit yoursel' to the lawfu' 
authority.  Tell them that ye'll be guidit in your public doings by 
them that has been set ower ye.
</para>
<para>
Troth, they'l